Search Results for 'south'

Forums Search Search Results for 'south'

Viewing 20 results - 21 through 40 (of 112 total)
  • Author
    Search Results
  • #6364
    ÉricÉric
    Keymaster

      Please suggest a creative, a little ghostic but mostly uplifting plot outline for the continuation of the story of Twilight in her travels to join the freak circus and become famous for her craft on the west coast

      — The Far-West saga — In 1850s, in a probable reality of South America, we get acquainted with Twilight (Twi) and her brothers Jo and Elroy. They have a precious blue bull in their possession, coveted by Ogrean, the kingpin of the town. Hopefully for them, Ogrean is arrested (temporarily) by Ted Marshall, the sheriff for his possible trafficking. Notably, Ogrean is possibly involved in some of the crystal skulls discoveries, during his travel to New Honduras. Twi who was dancing in the saloon of Madame Butterbutt, the town’s hallucinogenic toads-to-lick dispenser (insert some other romantic subplots involving the other dancer etc.) decides to go traveling in a freakus (freak show/circus). She is now close to the West Coast, where she hopes to succeed in her writing and other artistic skills.

      As Twilight (Twi) travels with the freak circus, she faces many challenges and obstacles on her journey to the West Coast. Despite the difficulties, she remains determined to make a name for herself as a writer and artist.

      As she travels through small towns and larger cities, she begins to realize that the world is much bigger than she ever imagined. She meets a diverse group of people, some of whom are kind and supportive, while others are cruel and dismissive of her dreams.

      Despite the negative reactions she receives from some people, Twi persists and begins to gain a reputation as a talented writer and performer. As she gains more experience and confidence, she starts to incorporate her own unique style into her performances, which sets her apart from the other performers in the circus.

      As she approaches the West Coast, she begins to feel a sense of excitement and anticipation. She has heard that the West Coast is a place of endless possibilities, where creative minds can thrive. She is determined to make her mark and become famous for her craft.

      As she settles in the west, she finds herself surrounded by artists and writers like herself, who inspire her to push herself even further. She begins to gain a following and her writing is widely read. She discovers that her talent is not only limited to writing, but she also has a natural talent for other art forms as well.

      Eventually, Twi’s reputation as a talented artist and writer precedes her and she becomes a sought-after performer in the West Coast, and her creative work is being showcased in galleries and theaters. As she continues to achieve success in her career, she begins to realize that the West Coast is not just a place of endless possibilities but also the place where she belongs, and the place where her dreams come true.

      Throughout her journey, she also keeps in touch with her brothers, Jo and Elroy, who now run the farm and take care of the blue bull. They tell her that the bull, now named Blue-Dream, became a legend in the village and they get a good price for its breeding.

      As the story continues, she finds herself also involved in some adventures and exciting subplots, like discovering a secret underground cave filled with precious crystals and some interesting characters, like the enigmatic sheriff Ted Marshall who always cross her path, and the mysterious Ogrean who seems to have a connection to her past and the bull.

      The End.

      #6350
      TracyTracy
      Participant

        Transportation

        Isaac Stokes 1804-1877

         

        Isaac was born in Churchill, Oxfordshire in 1804, and was the youngest brother of my 4X great grandfather Thomas Stokes. The Stokes family were stone masons for generations in Oxfordshire and Gloucestershire, and Isaac’s occupation was a mason’s labourer in 1834 when he was sentenced at the Lent Assizes in Oxford to fourteen years transportation for stealing tools.

        Churchill where the Stokes stonemasons came from: on 31 July 1684 a fire destroyed 20 houses and many other buildings, and killed four people. The village was rebuilt higher up the hill, with stone houses instead of the old timber-framed and thatched cottages. The fire was apparently caused by a baker who, to avoid chimney tax, had knocked through the wall from her oven to her neighbour’s chimney.

        Isaac stole a pick axe, the value of 2 shillings and the property of Thomas Joyner of Churchill; a kibbeaux and a trowel value 3 shillings the property of Thomas Symms; a hammer and axe value 5 shillings, property of John Keen of Sarsden.

        (The word kibbeaux seems to only exists in relation to Isaac Stokes sentence and whoever was the first to write it was perhaps being creative with the spelling of a kibbo, a miners or a metal bucket. This spelling is repeated in the criminal reports and the newspaper articles about Isaac, but nowhere else).

        In March 1834 the Removal of Convicts was announced in the Oxford University and City Herald: Isaac Stokes and several other prisoners were removed from the Oxford county gaol to the Justitia hulk at Woolwich “persuant to their sentences of transportation at our Lent Assizes”.

        via digitalpanopticon:

        Hulks were decommissioned (and often unseaworthy) ships that were moored in rivers and estuaries and refitted to become floating prisons. The outbreak of war in America in 1775 meant that it was no longer possible to transport British convicts there. Transportation as a form of punishment had started in the late seventeenth century, and following the Transportation Act of 1718, some 44,000 British convicts were sent to the American colonies. The end of this punishment presented a major problem for the authorities in London, since in the decade before 1775, two-thirds of convicts at the Old Bailey received a sentence of transportation – on average 283 convicts a year. As a result, London’s prisons quickly filled to overflowing with convicted prisoners who were sentenced to transportation but had no place to go.

        To increase London’s prison capacity, in 1776 Parliament passed the “Hulks Act” (16 Geo III, c.43). Although overseen by local justices of the peace, the hulks were to be directly managed and maintained by private contractors. The first contract to run a hulk was awarded to Duncan Campbell, a former transportation contractor. In August 1776, the Justicia, a former transportation ship moored in the River Thames, became the first prison hulk. This ship soon became full and Campbell quickly introduced a number of other hulks in London; by 1778 the fleet of hulks on the Thames held 510 prisoners.
        Demand was so great that new hulks were introduced across the country. There were hulks located at Deptford, Chatham, Woolwich, Gosport, Plymouth, Portsmouth, Sheerness and Cork.

        The Justitia via rmg collections:

        Justitia

        Convicts perform hard labour at the Woolwich Warren. The hulk on the river is the ‘Justitia’. Prisoners were kept on board such ships for months awaiting deportation to Australia. The ‘Justitia’ was a 260 ton prison hulk that had been originally moored in the Thames when the American War of Independence put a stop to the transportation of criminals to the former colonies. The ‘Justitia’ belonged to the shipowner Duncan Campbell, who was the Government contractor who organized the prison-hulk system at that time. Campbell was subsequently involved in the shipping of convicts to the penal colony at Botany Bay (in fact Port Jackson, later Sydney, just to the north) in New South Wales, the ‘first fleet’ going out in 1788.

         

        While searching for records for Isaac Stokes I discovered that another Isaac Stokes was transported to New South Wales in 1835 as well. The other one was a butcher born in 1809, sentenced in London for seven years, and he sailed on the Mary Ann. Our Isaac Stokes sailed on the Lady Nugent, arriving in NSW in April 1835, having set sail from England in December 1834.

        Lady Nugent was built at Bombay in 1813. She made four voyages under contract to the British East India Company (EIC). She then made two voyages transporting convicts to Australia, one to New South Wales and one to Van Diemen’s Land (Tasmania). (via Wikipedia)

        via freesettlerorfelon website:

        On 20 November 1834, 100 male convicts were transferred to the Lady Nugent from the Justitia Hulk and 60 from the Ganymede Hulk at Woolwich, all in apparent good health. The Lady Nugent departed Sheerness on 4 December 1834.

        SURGEON OLIVER SPROULE

        Oliver Sproule kept a Medical Journal from 7 November 1834 to 27 April 1835. He recorded in his journal the weather conditions they experienced in the first two weeks:

        ‘In the course of the first week or ten days at sea, there were eight or nine on the sick list with catarrhal affections and one with dropsy which I attribute to the cold and wet we experienced during that period beating down channel. Indeed the foremost berths in the prison at this time were so wet from leaking in that part of the ship, that I was obliged to issue dry beds and bedding to a great many of the prisoners to preserve their health, but after crossing the Bay of Biscay the weather became fine and we got the damp beds and blankets dried, the leaks partially stopped and the prison well aired and ventilated which, I am happy to say soon manifested a favourable change in the health and appearance of the men.

        Besides the cases given in the journal I had a great many others to treat, some of them similar to those mentioned but the greater part consisted of boils, scalds, and contusions which would not only be too tedious to enter but I fear would be irksome to the reader. There were four births on board during the passage which did well, therefore I did not consider it necessary to give a detailed account of them in my journal the more especially as they were all favourable cases.

        Regularity and cleanliness in the prison, free ventilation and as far as possible dry decks turning all the prisoners up in fine weather as we were lucky enough to have two musicians amongst the convicts, dancing was tolerated every afternoon, strict attention to personal cleanliness and also to the cooking of their victuals with regular hours for their meals, were the only prophylactic means used on this occasion, which I found to answer my expectations to the utmost extent in as much as there was not a single case of contagious or infectious nature during the whole passage with the exception of a few cases of psora which soon yielded to the usual treatment. A few cases of scurvy however appeared on board at rather an early period which I can attribute to nothing else but the wet and hardships the prisoners endured during the first three or four weeks of the passage. I was prompt in my treatment of these cases and they got well, but before we arrived at Sydney I had about thirty others to treat.’

        The Lady Nugent arrived in Port Jackson on 9 April 1835 with 284 male prisoners. Two men had died at sea. The prisoners were landed on 27th April 1835 and marched to Hyde Park Barracks prior to being assigned. Ten were under the age of 14 years.

        The Lady Nugent:

        Lady Nugent

         

        Isaac’s distinguishing marks are noted on various criminal registers and record books:

        “Height in feet & inches: 5 4; Complexion: Ruddy; Hair: Light brown; Eyes: Hazel; Marks or Scars: Yes [including] DEVIL on lower left arm, TSIS back of left hand, WS lower right arm, MHDW back of right hand.”

        Another includes more detail about Isaac’s tattoos:

        “Two slight scars right side of mouth, 2 moles above right breast, figure of the devil and DEVIL and raised mole, lower left arm; anchor, seven dots half moon, TSIS and cross, back of left hand; a mallet, door post, A, mans bust, sun, WS, lower right arm; woman, MHDW and shut knife, back of right hand.”

         

        Lady Nugent record book

         

        From How tattoos became fashionable in Victorian England (2019 article in TheConversation by Robert Shoemaker and Zoe Alkar):

        “Historical tattooing was not restricted to sailors, soldiers and convicts, but was a growing and accepted phenomenon in Victorian England. Tattoos provide an important window into the lives of those who typically left no written records of their own. As a form of “history from below”, they give us a fleeting but intriguing understanding of the identities and emotions of ordinary people in the past.
        As a practice for which typically the only record is the body itself, few systematic records survive before the advent of photography. One exception to this is the written descriptions of tattoos (and even the occasional sketch) that were kept of institutionalised people forced to submit to the recording of information about their bodies as a means of identifying them. This particularly applies to three groups – criminal convicts, soldiers and sailors. Of these, the convict records are the most voluminous and systematic.
        Such records were first kept in large numbers for those who were transported to Australia from 1788 (since Australia was then an open prison) as the authorities needed some means of keeping track of them.”

        On the 1837 census Isaac was working for the government at Illiwarra, New South Wales. This record states that he arrived on the Lady Nugent in 1835. There are three other indent records for an Isaac Stokes in the following years, but the transcriptions don’t provide enough information to determine which Isaac Stokes it was. In April 1837 there was an abscondment, and an arrest/apprehension in May of that year, and in 1843 there was a record of convict indulgences.

        From the Australian government website regarding “convict indulgences”:

        “By the mid-1830s only six per cent of convicts were locked up. The vast majority worked for the government or free settlers and, with good behaviour, could earn a ticket of leave, conditional pardon or and even an absolute pardon. While under such orders convicts could earn their own living.”

         

        In 1856 in Camden, NSW, Isaac Stokes married Catherine Daly. With no further information on this record it would be impossible to know for sure if this was the right Isaac Stokes. This couple had six children, all in the Camden area, but none of the records provided enough information. No occupation or place or date of birth recorded for Isaac Stokes.

        I wrote to the National Library of Australia about the marriage record, and their reply was a surprise! Issac and Catherine were married on 30 September 1856, at the house of the Rev. Charles William Rigg, a Methodist minister, and it was recorded that Isaac was born in Edinburgh in 1821, to parents James Stokes and Sarah Ellis!  The age at the time of the marriage doesn’t match Isaac’s age at death in 1877, and clearly the place of birth and parents didn’t match either. Only his fathers occupation of stone mason was correct.  I wrote back to the helpful people at the library and they replied that the register was in a very poor condition and that only two and a half entries had survived at all, and that Isaac and Catherines marriage was recorded over two pages.

        I searched for an Isaac Stokes born in 1821 in Edinburgh on the Scotland government website (and on all the other genealogy records sites) and didn’t find it. In fact Stokes was a very uncommon name in Scotland at the time. I also searched Australian immigration and other records for another Isaac Stokes born in Scotland or born in 1821, and found nothing.  I was unable to find a single record to corroborate this mysterious other Isaac Stokes.

        As the age at death in 1877 was correct, I assume that either Isaac was lying, or that some mistake was made either on the register at the home of the Methodist minster, or a subsequent mistranscription or muddle on the remnants of the surviving register.  Therefore I remain convinced that the Camden stonemason Isaac Stokes was indeed our Isaac from Oxfordshire.

         

        I found a history society newsletter article that mentioned Isaac Stokes, stone mason, had built the Glenmore church, near Camden, in 1859.

        Glenmore Church

         

        From the Wollondilly museum April 2020 newsletter:

        Glenmore Church Stokes

         

        From the Camden History website:

        “The stone set over the porch of Glenmore Church gives the date of 1860. The church was begun in 1859 on land given by Joseph Moore. James Rogers of Picton was given the contract to build and local builder, Mr. Stokes, carried out the work. Elizabeth Moore, wife of Edward, laid the foundation stone. The first service was held on 19th March 1860. The cemetery alongside the church contains the headstones and memorials of the areas early pioneers.”

         

        Isaac died on the 3rd September 1877. The inquest report puts his place of death as Bagdelly, near to Camden, and another death register has put Cambelltown, also very close to Camden.  His age was recorded as 71 and the inquest report states his cause of death was “rupture of one of the large pulmonary vessels of the lung”.  His wife Catherine died in childbirth in 1870 at the age of 43.

         

        Isaac and Catherine’s children:

        William Stokes 1857-1928

        Catherine Stokes 1859-1846

        Sarah Josephine Stokes 1861-1931

        Ellen Stokes 1863-1932

        Rosanna Stokes 1865-1919

        Louisa Stokes 1868-1844.

         

        It’s possible that Catherine Daly was a transported convict from Ireland.

         

        Some time later I unexpectedly received a follow up email from The Oaks Heritage Centre in Australia.

        “The Gaudry papers which we have in our archive record him (Isaac Stokes) as having built: the church, the school and the teachers residence.  Isaac is recorded in the General return of convicts: 1837 and in Grevilles Post Office directory 1872 as a mason in Glenmore.”

        Isaac Stokes directory

        #6348
        TracyTracy
        Participant

          Wong Sang

           

          Wong Sang was born in China in 1884. In October 1916 he married Alice Stokes in Oxford.

          Alice was the granddaughter of William Stokes of Churchill, Oxfordshire and William was the brother of Thomas Stokes the wheelwright (who was my 3X great grandfather). In other words Alice was my second cousin, three times removed, on my fathers paternal side.

          Wong Sang was an interpreter, according to the baptism registers of his children and the Dreadnought Seamen’s Hospital admission registers in 1930.  The hospital register also notes that he was employed by the Blue Funnel Line, and that his address was 11, Limehouse Causeway, E 14. (London)

          “The Blue Funnel Line offered regular First-Class Passenger and Cargo Services From the UK to South Africa, Malaya, China, Japan, Australia, Java, and America.  Blue Funnel Line was Owned and Operated by Alfred Holt & Co., Liverpool.
          The Blue Funnel Line, so-called because its ships have a blue funnel with a black top, is more appropriately known as the Ocean Steamship Company.”

           

          Wong Sang and Alice’s daughter, Frances Eileen Sang, was born on the 14th July, 1916 and baptised in 1920 at St Stephen in Poplar, Tower Hamlets, London.  The birth date is noted in the 1920 baptism register and would predate their marriage by a few months, although on the death register in 1921 her age at death is four years old and her year of birth is recorded as 1917.

          Charles Ronald Sang was baptised on the same day in May 1920, but his birth is recorded as April of that year.  The family were living on Morant Street, Poplar.

          James William Sang’s birth is recorded on the 1939 census and on the death register in 2000 as being the 8th March 1913.  This definitely would predate the 1916 marriage in Oxford.

          William Norman Sang was born on the 17th October 1922 in Poplar.

          Alice and the three sons were living at 11, Limehouse Causeway on the 1939 census, the same address that Wong Sang was living at when he was admitted to Dreadnought Seamen’s Hospital on the 15th January 1930. Wong Sang died in the hospital on the 8th March of that year at the age of 46.

          Alice married John Patterson in 1933 in Stepney. John was living with Alice and her three sons on Limehouse Causeway on the 1939 census and his occupation was chef.

          Via Old London Photographs:

          “Limehouse Causeway is a street in east London that was the home to the original Chinatown of London. A combination of bomb damage during the Second World War and later redevelopment means that almost nothing is left of the original buildings of the street.”

          Limehouse Causeway in 1925:

          Limehouse Causeway

           

          From The Story of Limehouse’s Lost Chinatown, poplarlondon website:

          “Limehouse was London’s first Chinatown, home to a tightly-knit community who were demonised in popular culture and eventually erased from the cityscape.

          As recounted in the BBC’s ‘Our Greatest Generation’ series, Connie was born to a Chinese father and an English mother in early 1920s Limehouse, where she used to play in the street with other British and British-Chinese children before running inside for teatime at one of their houses. 

          Limehouse was London’s first Chinatown between the 1880s and the 1960s, before the current Chinatown off Shaftesbury Avenue was established in the 1970s by an influx of immigrants from Hong Kong. 

          Connie’s memories of London’s first Chinatown as an “urban village” paint a very different picture to the seedy area portrayed in early twentieth century novels. 

          The pyramid in St Anne’s church marked the entrance to the opium den of Dr Fu Manchu, a criminal mastermind who threatened Western society by plotting world domination in a series of novels by Sax Rohmer. 

          Thomas Burke’s Limehouse Nights cemented stereotypes about prostitution, gambling and violence within the Chinese community, and whipped up anxiety about sexual relationships between Chinese men and white women. 

          Though neither novelist was familiar with the Chinese community, their depictions made Limehouse one of the most notorious areas of London. 

          Travel agent Thomas Cook even organised tours of the area for daring visitors, despite the rector of Limehouse warning that “those who look for the Limehouse of Mr Thomas Burke simply will not find it.”

          All that remains is a handful of Chinese street names, such as Ming Street, Pekin Street, and Canton Street — but what was Limehouse’s chinatown really like, and why did it get swept away?

          Chinese migration to Limehouse 

          Chinese sailors discharged from East India Company ships settled in the docklands from as early as the 1780s.

          By the late nineteenth century, men from Shanghai had settled around Pennyfields Lane, while a Cantonese community lived on Limehouse Causeway. 

          Chinese sailors were often paid less and discriminated against by dock hirers, and so began to diversify their incomes by setting up hand laundry services and restaurants. 

          Old photographs show shopfronts emblazoned with Chinese characters with horse-drawn carts idling outside or Chinese men in suits and hats standing proudly in the doorways. 

          In oral histories collected by Yat Ming Loo, Connie’s husband Leslie doesn’t recall seeing any Chinese women as a child, since male Chinese sailors settled in London alone and married working-class English women. 

          In the 1920s, newspapers fear-mongered about interracial marriages, crime and gambling, and described chinatown as an East End “colony.” 

          Ironically, Chinese opium-smoking was also demonised in the press, despite Britain waging war against China in the mid-nineteenth century for suppressing the opium trade to alleviate addiction amongst its people. 

          The number of Chinese people who settled in Limehouse was also greatly exaggerated, and in reality only totalled around 300. 

          The real Chinatown 

          Although the press sought to characterise Limehouse as a monolithic Chinese community in the East End, Connie remembers seeing people of all nationalities in the shops and community spaces in Limehouse.

          She doesn’t remember feeling discriminated against by other locals, though Connie does recall having her face measured and IQ tested by a member of the British Eugenics Society who was conducting research in the area. 

          Some of Connie’s happiest childhood memories were from her time at Chung-Hua Club, where she learned about Chinese culture and language.

          Why did Chinatown disappear? 

          The caricature of Limehouse’s Chinatown as a den of vice hastened its erasure. 

          Police raids and deportations fuelled by the alarmist media coverage threatened the Chinese population of Limehouse, and slum clearance schemes to redevelop low-income areas dispersed Chinese residents in the 1930s. 

          The Defence of the Realm Act imposed at the beginning of the First World War criminalised opium use, gave the authorities increased powers to deport Chinese people and restricted their ability to work on British ships.

          Dwindling maritime trade during World War II further stripped Chinese sailors of opportunities for employment, and any remnants of Chinatown were destroyed during the Blitz or erased by postwar development schemes.”

           

          Wong Sang 1884-1930

          The year 1918 was a troublesome one for Wong Sang, an interpreter and shipping agent for Blue Funnel Line.  The Sang family were living at 156, Chrisp Street.

          Chrisp Street, Poplar, in 1913 via Old London Photographs:

          Chrisp Street

           

          In February Wong Sang was discharged from a false accusation after defending his home from potential robbers.

          East End News and London Shipping Chronicle – Friday 15 February 1918:

          1918 Wong Sang

           

          In August of that year he was involved in an incident that left him unconscious.

          Faringdon Advertiser and Vale of the White Horse Gazette – Saturday 31 August 1918:

          1918 Wong Sang 2

           

          Wong Sang is mentioned in an 1922 article about “Oriental London”.

          London and China Express – Thursday 09 February 1922:

          1922 Wong Sang

          A photograph of the Chee Kong Tong Chinese Freemason Society mentioned in the above article, via Old London Photographs:

          Chee Kong Tong

           

          Wong Sang was recommended by the London Metropolitan Police in 1928 to assist in a case in Wellingborough, Northampton.

          Difficulty of Getting an Interpreter: Northampton Mercury – Friday 16 March 1928:

          1928 Wong Sang

          1928 Wong Sang 2

          The difficulty was that “this man speaks the Cantonese language only…the Northeners and the Southerners in China have differing languages and the interpreter seemed to speak one that was in between these two.”

           

          In 1917, Alice Wong Sang was a witness at her sister Harriet Stokes marriage to James William Watts in Southwark, London.  Their father James Stokes occupation on the marriage register is foreman surveyor, but on the census he was a council roadman or labourer. (I initially rejected this as the correct marriage for Harriet because of the discrepancy with the occupations. Alice Wong Sang as a witness confirmed that it was indeed the correct one.)

          1917 Alice Wong Sang

           

           

          James William Sang 1913-2000 was a clock fitter and watch assembler (on the 1939 census). He married Ivy Laura Fenton in 1963 in Sidcup, Kent. James died in Southwark in 2000.

          Charles Ronald Sang 1920-1974  was a draughtsman (1939 census). He married Eileen Burgess in 1947 in Marylebone.  Charles and Eileen had two sons:  Keith born in 1951 and Roger born in 1952.  He died in 1974 in Hertfordshire.

          William Norman Sang 1922-2000 was a clerk and telephone operator (1939 census).  William enlisted in the Royal Artillery in 1942. He married Lily Mullins in 1949 in Bethnal Green, and they had three daughters: Marion born in 1950, Christine in 1953, and Frances in 1959.  He died in Redbridge in 2000.

           

          I then found another two births registered in Poplar by Alice Sang, both daughters.  Doris Winifred Sang was born in 1925, and Patricia Margaret Sang was born in 1933 ~ three years after Wong Sang’s death.  Neither of the these daughters were on the 1939 census with Alice, John Patterson and the three sons.  Margaret had presumably been evacuated because of the war to a family in Taunton, Somerset. Doris would have been fourteen and I have been unable to find her in 1939 (possibly because she died in 2017 and has not had the redaction removed  yet on the 1939 census as only deceased people are viewable).

          Doris Winifred Sang 1925-2017 was a nursing sister. She didn’t marry, and spent a year in USA between 1954 and 1955. She stayed in London, and died at the age of ninety two in 2017.

          Patricia Margaret Sang 1933-1998 was also a nurse. She married Patrick L Nicely in Stepney in 1957.  Patricia and Patrick had five children in London: Sharon born 1959, Donald in 1960, Malcolm was born and died in 1966, Alison was born in 1969 and David in 1971.

           

          I was unable to find a birth registered for Alice’s first son, James William Sang (as he appeared on the 1939 census).  I found Alice Stokes on the 1911 census as a 17 year old live in servant at a tobacconist on Pekin Street, Limehouse, living with Mr Sui Fong from Hong Kong and his wife Sarah Sui Fong from Berlin.  I looked for a birth registered for James William Fong instead of Sang, and found it ~ mothers maiden name Stokes, and his date of birth matched the 1939 census: 8th March, 1913.

          On the 1921 census, Wong Sang is not listed as living with them but it is mentioned that Mr Wong Sang was the person returning the census.  Also living with Alice and her sons James and Charles in 1921 are two visitors:  (Florence) May Stokes, 17 years old, born in Woodstock, and Charles Stokes, aged 14, also born in Woodstock. May and Charles were Alice’s sister and brother.

           

          I found Sharon Nicely on social media and she kindly shared photos of Wong Sang and Alice Stokes:

          Wong Sang

           

          Alice Stokes

          #6344
          TracyTracy
          Participant

            The Tetbury Riots

             

            While researching the Tetbury riots  (I had found some Browning names in the newspaper archives in association with the uprisings) I came across an article called “Elizabeth Parker, the Swing Riots, and the Tetbury parish clerk” by Jill Evans.

            I noted the name of the parish clerk, Daniel Cole, because I know someone else of that name. The incident in the article was 1830.

            I found the 1826 marriage in the Tetbury parish registers (where Daniel was the parish clerk) of my 4x great grandmothers sister Hesther Lock. One of the witnesses was her brother Charles, and the other was Daniel Cole, the parish clerk.

            Marriage of Lewin Chandler and Hesther Lock in 1826:

            Daniel Cole witness

             

            from the article:

            “The Swing Riots were disturbances which took place in 1830 and 1831, mostly in the southern counties of England. Agricultural labourers, who were already suffering due to low wages and a lack of work after several years of bad harvests, rose up when their employers introduced threshing machines into their workplaces. The riots got their name from the threatening letters which were sent to farmers and other employers, which were signed “Captain Swing.”

            The riots spread into Gloucestershire in November 1830, with the Tetbury area seeing the worst of the disturbances. Amongst the many people arrested afterwards was one woman, Elizabeth Parker. She has sometimes been cited as one of only two females who were transported for taking part in the Swing Riots. In fact, she was sentenced to be transported for this crime, but never sailed, as she was pardoned a few months after being convicted. However, less than a year after being released from Gloucester Gaol, she was back, awaiting trial for another offence. The circumstances in both of the cases she was tried for reveal an intriguing relationship with one Daniel Cole, parish clerk and assistant poor law officer in Tetbury….

            ….Elizabeth Parker was committed to Gloucester Gaol on 4 December 1830. In the Gaol Registers, she was described as being 23 and a “labourer”. She was in fact a prostitute, and she was unusual for the time in that she could read and write. She was charged on the oaths of Daniel Cole and others with having been among a mob which destroyed a threshing machine belonging to Jacob Hayward, at his farm in Beverstone, on 26 November.

            …..Elizabeth Parker was granted royal clemency in July 1831 and was released from prison. She returned to Tetbury and presumably continued in her usual occupation, but on 27 March 1832, she was committed to Gloucester Gaol again. This time, she was charged with stealing 2 five pound notes, 5 sovereigns and 5 half sovereigns, from the person of Daniel Cole.

            Elizabeth was tried at the Lent Assizes which began on 28 March, 1832. The details of her trial were reported in the Morning Post. Daniel Cole was in the “Boat Inn” (meaning the Boot Inn, I think) in Tetbury, when Elizabeth Parker came in. Cole “accompanied her down the yard”, where he stayed with her for about half an hour. The next morning, he realised that all his money was gone. One of his five pound notes was identified by him in a shop, where Parker had bought some items.

            Under cross-examination, Cole said he was the assistant overseer of the poor and collector of public taxes of the parish of Tetbury. He was married with one child. He went in to the inn at about 9 pm, and stayed about 2 hours, drinking in the parlour, with the landlord, Elizabeth Parker, and two others. He was not drunk, but he was “rather fresh.” He gave the prisoner no money. He saw Elizabeth Parker next morning at the Prince and Princess public house. He didn’t drink with her or give her any money. He did give her a shilling after she was committed. He never said that he would not have prosecuted her “if it was not for her own tongue”. (Presumably meaning he couldn’t trust her to keep her mouth shut.)”

            Contemporary illustration of the Swing riots:

            Swing Riots

             

            Captain Swing was the imaginary leader agricultural labourers who set fire to barns and haystacks in the southern and eastern counties of England from 1830. Although the riots were ruthlessly put down (19 hanged, 644 imprisoned and 481 transported), the rural agitation led the new Whig government to establish a Royal Commission on the Poor Laws and its report provided the basis for the 1834 New Poor Law enacted after the Great Reform Bills of 1833.

            An original portrait of Captain Swing hand coloured lithograph circa 1830:

            Captain Swing

            #6316

            In reply to: The Sexy Wooden Leg

            Myroslava was hungry. She saw ducks flying in the sky and realised she wasn’t too far from the Kal’mius river, south of Dantesk. She took out her sling and hit one with a stone she just picked on the floor. She smiled and said in a low voice : “You see father, I haven’t lost my touch.”

            She had traveled several days with a group of reportourists, as she called them. A bunch of war reporters who thought it entertaining to take pictures of bombed areas, going about like peacocks as if they wore a plot armour against Rootian bullets and missiles and discourse at night on the tactics of the different armies. She was glad when she crossed the Rootian lines two days ago. Even if it meant no more dehydrated food and no more plot armour, she was certainly better off without the inane discussions.

            She picked the duck and looked for a freshly bombarded place where there was still smoke. She could make some fire without being noticed too much. She didn’t like raw meat that much.

            Soon after leaving the group or reportourists, without all the noise they made, she became certain she was being followed. She tried once to surprise them, but they were good at hiding and camouflaging their tracks. She wondered how long it had lasted. She cursed the noisy reporters and cursed her lack of good vodka. Cursing without alcohol was like boxing without fists.

            #6306
            TracyTracy
            Participant

              Looking for Robert Staley

               

              William Warren (1835-1880) of Newhall (Stapenhill) married Elizabeth Staley (1836-1907) in 1858. Elizabeth was born in Newhall, the daughter of John Staley (1795-1876) and Jane Brothers. John was born in Newhall, and Jane was born in Armagh, Ireland, and they were married in Armagh in 1820. Elizabeths older brothers were born in Ireland: William in 1826 and Thomas in Dublin in 1830. Francis was born in Liverpool in 1834, and then Elizabeth in Newhall in 1836; thereafter the children were born in Newhall.

              Marriage of John Staley and Jane Brothers in 1820:

              1820 marriage Armagh

               

               

              My grandmother related a story about an Elizabeth Staley who ran away from boarding school and eloped to Ireland, but later returned. The only Irish connection found so far is Jane Brothers, so perhaps she meant Elizabeth Staley’s mother. A boarding school seems unlikely, and it would seem that it was John Staley who went to Ireland.

              The 1841 census states Jane’s age as 33, which would make her just 12 at the time of her marriage. The 1851 census states her age as 44, making her 13 at the time of her 1820 marriage, and the 1861 census estimates her birth year as a more likely 1804. Birth records in Ireland for her have not been found. It’s possible, perhaps, that she was in service in the Newhall area as a teenager (more likely than boarding school), and that John and Jane ran off to get married in Ireland, although I haven’t found any record of a child born to them early in their marriage. John was an agricultural labourer, and later a coal miner.

              John Staley was the son of Joseph Staley (1756-1838) and Sarah Dumolo (1764-). Joseph and Sarah were married by licence in Newhall in 1782. Joseph was a carpenter on the marriage licence, but later a collier (although not necessarily a miner).

              The Derbyshire Record Office holds records of  an “Estimate of Joseph Staley of Newhall for the cost of continuing to work Pisternhill Colliery” dated 1820 and addresssed to Mr Bloud at Calke Abbey (presumably the owner of the mine)

              Josephs parents were Robert Staley and Elizabeth. I couldn’t find a baptism or birth record for Robert Staley. Other trees on an ancestry site had his birth in Elton, but with no supporting documents. Robert, as stated in his 1795 will, was a Yeoman.

              “Yeoman: A former class of small freeholders who farm their own land; a commoner of good standing.”
              “Husbandman: The old word for a farmer below the rank of yeoman. A husbandman usually held his land by copyhold or leasehold tenure and may be regarded as the ‘average farmer in his locality’. The words ‘yeoman’ and ‘husbandman’ were gradually replaced in the later 18th and 19th centuries by ‘farmer’.”

              He left a number of properties in Newhall and Hartshorne (near Newhall) including dwellings, enclosures, orchards, various yards, barns and acreages. It seemed to me more likely that he had inherited them, rather than moving into the village and buying them.

              There is a mention of Robert Staley in a 1782 newpaper advertisement.

              “Fire Engine To Be Sold.  An exceedingly good fire engine, with the boiler, cylinder, etc in good condition. For particulars apply to Mr Burslem at Burton-upon-Trent, or Robert Staley at Newhall near Burton, where the engine may be seen.”

              fire engine

               

              Was the fire engine perhaps connected with a foundry or a coal mine?

              I noticed that Robert Staley was the witness at a 1755 marriage in Stapenhill between Barbara Burslem and Richard Daston the younger esquire. The other witness was signed Burslem Jnr.

               

              Looking for Robert Staley

               

              I assumed that once again, in the absence of the correct records, a similarly named and aged persons baptism had been added to the tree regardless of accuracy, so I looked through the Stapenhill/Newhall parish register images page by page. There were no Staleys in Newhall at all in the early 1700s, so it seemed that Robert did come from elsewhere and I expected to find the Staleys in a neighbouring parish. But I still didn’t find any Staleys.

              I spoke to a couple of Staley descendants that I’d met during the family research. I met Carole via a DNA match some months previously and contacted her to ask about the Staleys in Elton. She also had Robert Staley born in Elton (indeed, there were many Staleys in Elton) but she didn’t have any documentation for his birth, and we decided to collaborate and try and find out more.

              I couldn’t find the earlier Elton parish registers anywhere online, but eventually found the untranscribed microfiche images of the Bishops Transcripts for Elton.

              via familysearch:
              “In its most basic sense, a bishop’s transcript is a copy of a parish register. As bishop’s transcripts generally contain more or less the same information as parish registers, they are an invaluable resource when a parish register has been damaged, destroyed, or otherwise lost. Bishop’s transcripts are often of value even when parish registers exist, as priests often recorded either additional or different information in their transcripts than they did in the original registers.”

               

              Unfortunately there was a gap in the Bishops Transcripts between 1704 and 1711 ~ exactly where I needed to look. I subsequently found out that the Elton registers were incomplete as they had been damaged by fire.

              I estimated Robert Staleys date of birth between 1710 and 1715. He died in 1795, and his son Daniel died in 1805: both of these wills were found online. Daniel married Mary Moon in Stapenhill in 1762, making a likely birth date for Daniel around 1740.

              The marriage of Robert Staley (assuming this was Robert’s father) and Alice Maceland (or Marsland or Marsden, depending on how the parish clerk chose to spell it presumably) was in the Bishops Transcripts for Elton in 1704. They were married in Elton on 26th February. There followed the missing parish register pages and in all likelihood the records of the baptisms of their first children. No doubt Robert was one of them, probably the first male child.

              (Incidentally, my grandfather’s Marshalls also came from Elton, a small Derbyshire village near Matlock.  The Staley’s are on my grandmothers Warren side.)

              The parish register pages resume in 1711. One of the first entries was the baptism of Robert Staley in 1711, parents Thomas and Ann. This was surely the one we were looking for, and Roberts parents weren’t Robert and Alice.

              But then in 1735 a marriage was recorded between Robert son of Robert Staley (and this was unusual, the father of the groom isn’t usually recorded on the parish register) and Elizabeth Milner. They were married on the 9th March 1735. We know that the Robert we were looking for married an Elizabeth, as her name was on the Stapenhill baptisms of their later children, including Joseph Staleys.  The 1735 marriage also fit with the assumed birth date of Daniel, circa 1740. A baptism was found for a Robert Staley in 1738 in the Elton registers, parents Robert and Elizabeth, as well as the baptism in 1736 for Mary, presumably their first child. Her burial is recorded the following year.

              The marriage of Robert Staley and Elizabeth Milner in 1735:

              rbt staley marriage 1735

               

              There were several other Staley couples of a similar age in Elton, perhaps brothers and cousins. It seemed that Thomas and Ann’s son Robert was a different Robert, and that the one we were looking for was prior to that and on the missing pages.

              Even so, this doesn’t prove that it was Elizabeth Staleys great grandfather who was born in Elton, but no other birth or baptism for Robert Staley has been found. It doesn’t explain why the Staleys moved to Stapenhill either, although the Enclosures Act and the Industrial Revolution could have been factors.

              The 18th century saw the rise of the Industrial Revolution and many renowned Derbyshire Industrialists emerged. They created the turning point from what was until then a largely rural economy, to the development of townships based on factory production methods.

              The Marsden Connection

              There are some possible clues in the records of the Marsden family.  Robert Staley married Alice Marsden (or Maceland or Marsland) in Elton in 1704.  Robert Staley is mentioned in the 1730 will of John Marsden senior,  of Baslow, Innkeeper (Peacock Inne & Whitlands Farm). He mentions his daughter Alice, wife of Robert Staley.

              In a 1715 Marsden will there is an intriguing mention of an alias, which might explain the different spellings on various records for the name Marsden:  “MARSDEN alias MASLAND, Christopher – of Baslow, husbandman, 28 Dec 1714. son Robert MARSDEN alias MASLAND….” etc.

              Some potential reasons for a move from one parish to another are explained in this history of the Marsden family, and indeed this could relate to Robert Staley as he married into the Marsden family and his wife was a beneficiary of a Marsden will.  The Chatsworth Estate, at various times, bought a number of farms in order to extend the park.

              THE MARSDEN FAMILY
              OXCLOSE AND PARKGATE
              In the Parishes of
              Baslow and Chatsworth

              by
              David Dalrymple-Smith

              John Marsden (b1653) another son of Edmund (b1611) faired well. By the time he died in
              1730 he was publican of the Peacock, the Inn on Church Lane now called the Cavendish
              Hotel, and the farmer at “Whitlands”, almost certainly Bubnell Cliff Farm.”

              “Coal mining was well known in the Chesterfield area. The coalfield extends as far as the
              Gritstone edges, where thin seams outcrop especially in the Baslow area.”

              “…the occupants were evicted from the farmland below Dobb Edge and
              the ground carefully cleared of all traces of occupation and farming. Shelter belts were
              planted especially along the Heathy Lea Brook. An imposing new drive was laid to the
              Chatsworth House with the Lodges and “The Golden Gates” at its northern end….”

              Although this particular event was later than any events relating to Robert Staley, it’s an indication of how farms and farmland disappeared, and a reason for families to move to another area:

              “The Dukes of Devonshire (of Chatsworth)  were major figures in the aristocracy and the government of the
              time. Such a position demanded a display of wealth and ostentation. The 6th Duke of
              Devonshire, the Bachelor Duke, was not content with the Chatsworth he inherited in 1811,
              and immediately started improvements. After major changes around Edensor, he turned his
              attention at the north end of the Park. In 1820 plans were made extend the Park up to the
              Baslow parish boundary. As this would involve the destruction of most of the Farm at
              Oxclose, the farmer at the Higher House Samuel Marsden (b1755) was given the tenancy of
              Ewe Close a large farm near Bakewell.
              Plans were revised in 1824 when the Dukes of Devonshire and Rutland “Exchanged Lands”,
              reputedly during a game of dice. Over 3300 acres were involved in several local parishes, of
              which 1000 acres were in Baslow. In the deal Devonshire acquired the southeast corner of
              Baslow Parish.
              Part of the deal was Gibbet Moor, which was developed for “Sport”. The shelf of land
              between Parkgate and Robin Hood and a few extra fields was left untouched. The rest,
              between Dobb Edge and Baslow, was agricultural land with farms, fields and houses. It was
              this last part that gave the Duke the opportunity to improve the Park beyond his earlier
              expectations.”

               

              The 1795 will of Robert Staley.

              Inriguingly, Robert included the children of his son Daniel Staley in his will, but omitted to leave anything to Daniel.  A perusal of Daniels 1808 will sheds some light on this:  Daniel left his property to his six reputed children with Elizabeth Moon, and his reputed daughter Mary Brearly. Daniels wife was Mary Moon, Elizabeths husband William Moons daughter.

              The will of Robert Staley, 1795:

              1795 will 2

              1795 Rbt Staley will

               

              The 1805 will of Daniel Staley, Robert’s son:

              This is the last will and testament of me Daniel Staley of the Township of Newhall in the parish of Stapenhill in the County of Derby, Farmer. I will and order all of my just debts, funeral and testamentary expenses to be fully paid and satisfied by my executors hereinafter named by and out of my personal estate as soon as conveniently may be after my decease.

              I give, devise and bequeath to Humphrey Trafford Nadin of Church Gresely in the said County of Derby Esquire and John Wilkinson of Newhall aforesaid yeoman all my messuages, lands, tenements, hereditaments and real and personal estates to hold to them, their heirs, executors, administrators and assigns until Richard Moon the youngest of my reputed sons by Elizabeth Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years upon trust that they, my said trustees, (or the survivor of them, his heirs, executors, administrators or assigns), shall and do manage and carry on my farm at Newhall aforesaid and pay and apply the rents, issues and profits of all and every of my said real and personal estates in for and towards the support, maintenance and education of all my reputed children by the said Elizabeth Moon until the said Richard Moon my youngest reputed son shall attain his said age of twenty one years and equally share and share and share alike.

              And it is my will and desire that my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall recruit and keep up the stock upon my farm as they in their discretion shall see occasion or think proper and that the same shall not be diminished. And in case any of my said reputed children by the said Elizabeth Moon shall be married before my said reputed youngest son shall attain his age of twenty one years that then it is my will and desire that non of their husbands or wives shall come to my farm or be maintained there or have their abode there. That it is also my will and desire in case my reputed children or any of them shall not be steady to business but instead shall be wild and diminish the stock that then my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall have full power and authority in their discretion to sell and dispose of all or any part of my said personal estate and to put out the money arising from the sale thereof to interest and to pay and apply the interest thereof and also thereunto of the said real estate in for and towards the maintenance, education and support of all my said reputed children by the said
              Elizabeth Moon as they my said trustees in their discretion that think proper until the said Richard Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years.

              Then I give to my grandson Daniel Staley the sum of ten pounds and to each and every of my sons and daughters namely Daniel Staley, Benjamin Staley, John Staley, William Staley, Elizabeth Dent and Sarah Orme and to my niece Ann Brearly the sum of five pounds apiece.

              I give to my youngest reputed son Richard Moon one share in the Ashby Canal Navigation and I direct that my said trustees or trustee for the time being shall have full power and authority to pay and apply all or any part of the fortune or legacy hereby intended for my youngest reputed son Richard Moon in placing him out to any trade, business or profession as they in their discretion shall think proper.
              And I direct that to my said sons and daughters by my late wife and my said niece shall by wholly paid by my said reputed son Richard Moon out of the fortune herby given him. And it is my will and desire that my said reputed children shall deliver into the hands of my executors all the monies that shall arise from the carrying on of my business that is not wanted to carry on the same unto my acting executor and shall keep a just and true account of all disbursements and receipts of the said business and deliver up the same to my acting executor in order that there may not be any embezzlement or defraud amongst them and from and immediately after my said reputed youngest son Richard Moon shall attain his age of twenty one years then I give, devise and bequeath all my real estate and all the residue and remainder of my personal estate of what nature and kind whatsoever and wheresoever unto and amongst all and every my said reputed sons and daughters namely William Moon, Thomas Moon, Joseph Moon, Richard Moon, Ann Moon, Margaret Moon and to my reputed daughter Mary Brearly to hold to them and their respective heirs, executors, administrator and assigns for ever according to the nature and tenure of the same estates respectively to take the same as tenants in common and not as joint tenants.

              And lastly I nominate and appoint the said Humphrey Trafford Nadin and John Wilkinson executors of this my last will and testament and guardians of all my reputed children who are under age during their respective minorities hereby revoking all former and other wills by me heretofore made and declaring this only to be my last will.

              In witness whereof I the said Daniel Staley the testator have to this my last will and testament set my hand and seal the eleventh day of March in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and five.

               

              #6293
              TracyTracy
              Participant

                Lincolnshire Families

                 

                Thanks to the 1851 census, we know that William Eaton was born in Grantham, Lincolnshire. He was baptised on 29 November 1768 at St Wulfram’s church; his father was William Eaton and his mother Elizabeth.

                St Wulfram’s in Grantham painted by JMW Turner in 1797:

                St Wulframs

                 

                I found a marriage for a William Eaton and Elizabeth Rose in the city of Lincoln in 1761, but it seemed unlikely as they were both of that parish, and with no discernable links to either Grantham or Nottingham.

                But there were two marriages registered for William Eaton and Elizabeth Rose: one in Lincoln in 1761 and one in Hawkesworth Nottinghamshire in 1767, the year before William junior was baptised in Grantham. Hawkesworth is between Grantham and Nottingham, and this seemed much more likely.

                Elizabeth’s name is spelled Rose on her marriage records, but spelled Rouse on her baptism. It’s not unusual for spelling variations to occur, as the majority of people were illiterate and whoever was recording the event wrote what it sounded like.

                Elizabeth Rouse was baptised on 26th December 1746 in Gunby St Nicholas (there is another Gunby in Lincolnshire), a short distance from Grantham. Her father was Richard Rouse; her mother Cave Pindar. Cave is a curious name and I wondered if it had been mistranscribed, but it appears to be correct and clearly says Cave on several records.

                Richard Rouse married Cave Pindar 21 July 1744 in South Witham, not far from Grantham.

                Richard was born in 1716 in North Witham. His father was William Rouse; his mothers name was Jane.

                Cave Pindar was born in 1719 in Gunby St Nicholas, near Grantham. Her father was William Pindar, but sadly her mothers name is not recorded in the parish baptism register. However a marriage was registered between William Pindar and Elizabeth Holmes in Gunby St Nicholas in October 1712.

                William Pindar buried a daughter Cave on 2 April 1719 and baptised a daughter Cave on 6 Oct 1719:

                Cave Pindar

                 

                Elizabeth Holmes was baptised in Gunby St Nicholas on 6th December 1691. Her father was John Holmes; her mother Margaret Hod.

                Margaret Hod would have been born circa 1650 to 1670 and I haven’t yet found a baptism record for her. According to several other public trees on an ancestry website, she was born in 1654 in Essenheim, Germany. This was surprising! According to these trees, her father was Johannes Hod (Blodt|Hoth) (1609–1677) and her mother was Maria Appolonia Witters (1620–1656).

                I did not think it very likely that a young woman born in Germany would appear in Gunby St Nicholas in the late 1600’s, and did a search for Hod’s in and around Grantham. Indeed there were Hod’s living in the area as far back as the 1500’s, (a Robert Hod was baptised in Grantham in 1552), and no doubt before, but the parish records only go so far back. I think it’s much more likely that her parents were local, and that the page with her baptism recorded on the registers is missing.

                Of the many reasons why parish registers or some of the pages would be destroyed or lost, this is another possibility. Lincolnshire is on the east coast of England:

                “All of England suffered from a “monster” storm in November of 1703 that killed a reported 8,000 people. Seaside villages suffered greatly and their church and civil records may have been lost.”

                A Margeret Hod, widow, died in Gunby St Nicholas in 1691, the same year that Elizabeth Holmes was born. Elizabeth’s mother was Margaret Hod. Perhaps the widow who died was Margaret Hod’s mother? I did wonder if Margaret Hod had died shortly after her daughter’s birth, and that her husband had died sometime between the conception and birth of his child. The Black Death or Plague swept through Lincolnshire in 1680 through 1690; such an eventually would be possible. But Margaret’s name would have been registered as Holmes, not Hod.

                Cave Pindar’s father William was born in Swinstead, Lincolnshire, also near to Grantham, on the 28th December, 1690, and he died in Gunby St Nicholas in 1756. William’s father is recorded as Thomas Pinder; his mother Elizabeth.

                GUNBY: The village name derives from a “farmstead or village of a man called Gunni”, from the Old Scandinavian person name, and ‘by’, a farmstead, village or settlement.
                Gunby Grade II listed Anglican church is dedicated to St Nicholas. Of 15th-century origin, it was rebuilt by Richard Coad in 1869, although the Perpendicular tower remained.

                Gunby St Nicholas

                #6286
                TracyTracy
                Participant

                  Matthew Orgill and His Family

                   

                  Matthew Orgill 1828-1907 was the Orgill brother who went to Australia, but returned to Measham.  Matthew married Mary Orgill in Measham in October 1856, having returned from Victoria, Australia in May of that year.

                  Although Matthew was the first Orgill brother to go to Australia, he was the last one I found, and that was somewhat by accident, while perusing “Orgill” and “Measham” in a newspaper archives search.  I chanced on Matthew’s obituary in the Nuneaton Observer, Friday 14 June 1907:

                  LATE MATTHEW ORGILL PEACEFUL END TO A BLAMELESS LIFE.

                  ‘Sunset and Evening Star And one clear call for me.”

                  It is with very deep regret that we have to announce the death of Mr. Matthew Orgill, late of Measham, who passed peacefully away at his residence in Manor Court Road, Nuneaton, in the early hours of yesterday morning. Mr. Orgill, who was in his eightieth year, was a man with a striking history, and was a very fine specimen of our best English manhood. In early life be emigrated to South Africa—sailing in the “Hebrides” on 4th February. 1850—and was one of the first settlers at the Cape; afterwards he went on to Australia at the time of the Gold Rush, and ultimately came home to his native England and settled down in Measham, in Leicestershire, where he carried on a successful business for the long period of half-a-century.

                  He was full of reminiscences of life in the Colonies in the early days, and an hour or two in his company was an education itself. On the occasion of the recall of Sir Harry Smith from the Governorship of Natal (for refusing to be a party to the slaying of the wives and children in connection with the Kaffir War), Mr. Orgill was appointed to superintend the arrangements for the farewell demonstration. It was one of his boasts that he made the first missionary cart used in South Africa, which is in use to this day—a monument to the character of his work; while it is an interesting fact to note that among Mr. Orgill’s papers there is the original ground-plan of the city of Durban before a single house was built.

                  In Africa Mr. Orgill came in contact with the great missionary, David Livingstone, and between the two men there was a striking resemblance in character and a deep and lasting friendship. Mr. Orgill could give a most graphic description of the wreck of the “Birkenhead,” having been in the vicinity at the time when the ill-fated vessel went down. He played a most prominent part on the occasion of the famous wreck of the emigrant ship, “Minerva.” when, in conjunction with some half-a-dozen others, and at the eminent risk of their own lives, they rescued more than 100 of the unfortunate passengers. He was afterwards presented with an interesting relic as a memento of that thrilling experience, being a copper bolt from the vessel on which was inscribed the following words: “Relic of the ship Minerva, wrecked off Bluff Point, Port Natal. 8.A.. about 2 a.m.. Friday, July 5, 1850.”

                  Mr. Orgill was followed to the Colonies by no fewer than six of his brothers, all of whom did well, and one of whom married a niece (brother’s daughter) of the late Mr. William Ewart Gladstone.

                  On settling down in Measham his kindly and considerate disposition soon won for him a unique place in the hearts of all the people, by whom he was greatly beloved. He was a man of sterling worth and integrity. Upright and honourable in all his dealings, he led a Christian life that was a pattern to all with whom he came in contact, and of him it could truly he said that he wore the white flower of a blameless life.

                  He was a member of the Baptist Church, and although beyond much active service since settling down in Nuneaton less than two years ago he leaves behind him a record in Christian service attained by few. In politics he was a Radical of the old school. A great reader, he studied all the questions of the day, and could back up every belief he held by sound and fearless argument. The South African – war was a great grief to him. He knew the Boers from personal experience, and although he suffered at the time of the war for his outspoken condemnation, he had the satisfaction of living to see the people of England fully recognising their awful blunder. To give anything like an adequate idea of Mr. Orgill’s history would take up a great amount of space, and besides much of it has been written and commented on before; suffice it to say that it was strenuous, interesting, and eventful, and yet all through his hands remained unspotted and his heart was pure.

                  He is survived by three daughters, and was father-in-law to Mr. J. S. Massey. St Kilda. Manor Court Road, to whom deep and loving sympathy is extended in their sore bereavement by a wide circle of friends. The funeral is arranged to leave for Measham on Monday at twelve noon.

                   

                  “To give anything like an adequate idea of Mr. Orgill’s history would take up a great amount of space, and besides much of it has been written and commented on before…”

                  I had another look in the newspaper archives and found a number of articles mentioning him, including an intriguing excerpt in an article about local history published in the Burton Observer and Chronicle 8 August 1963:

                  on an upstairs window pane he scratched with his diamond ring “Matthew Orgill, 1st July, 1858”

                  Matthew Orgill window

                  Matthew orgill window 2

                   

                  I asked on a Measham facebook group if anyone knew the location of the house mentioned in the article and someone kindly responded. This is the same building, seen from either side:

                  Measham Wharf

                   

                  Coincidentally, I had already found this wonderful photograph of the same building, taken in 1910 ~ three years after Matthew’s death.

                  Old Measham wharf

                   

                  But what to make of the inscription in the window?

                  Matthew and Mary married in October 1856, and their first child (according to the records I’d found thus far) was a daughter Mary born in 1860.  I had a look for a Matthew Orgill birth registered in 1858, the date Matthew had etched on the window, and found a death for a Matthew Orgill in 1859.  Assuming I would find the birth of Matthew Orgill registered on the first of July 1958, to match the etching in the window, the corresponding birth was in July 1857!

                  Matthew and Mary had four children. Matthew, Mary, Clara and Hannah.  Hannah Proudman Orgill married Joseph Stanton Massey.  The Orgill name continues with their son Stanley Orgill Massey 1900-1979, who was a doctor and surgeon.  Two of Stanley’s four sons were doctors, Paul Mackintosh Orgill Massey 1929-2009, and Michael Joseph Orgill Massey 1932-1989.

                   

                  Mary Orgill 1827-1894, Matthews wife, was an Orgill too.

                  And this is where the Orgill branch of the tree gets complicated.

                  Mary’s father was Henry Orgill born in 1805 and her mother was Hannah Proudman born in 1805.
                  Henry Orgill’s father was Matthew Orgill born in 1769 and his mother was Frances Finch born in 1771.

                  Mary’s husband Matthews parents are Matthew Orgill born in 1798 and Elizabeth Orgill born in 1803.

                  Another Orgill Orgill marriage!

                  Matthews parents,  Matthew and Elizabeth, have the same grandparents as each other, Matthew Orgill born in 1736 and Ann Proudman born in 1735.

                  But Matthews grandparents are none other than Matthew Orgill born in 1769 and Frances Finch born in 1771 ~ the same grandparents as his wife Mary!

                  #6284
                  TracyTracy
                  Participant

                    To Australia

                    Grettons

                    Charles Herbert Gretton 1876-1954

                    Charles Gretton, my great grandmothers youngest brother, arrived in Sydney Australia on 12 February 1912, having set sail on 5 January 1912 from London. His occupation on the passenger list was stockman, and he was traveling alone.  Later that year, in October, his wife and two sons sailed out to join him.

                    Gretton 1912 passenger

                     

                    Charles was born in Swadlincote.  He married Mary Anne Illsley, a local girl from nearby Church Gresley, in 1898. Their first son, Leslie Charles Bloemfontein Gretton, was born in 1900 in Church Gresley, and their second son, George Herbert Gretton, was born in 1910 in Swadlincote.  In 1901 Charles was a colliery worker, and on the 1911 census, his occupation was a sanitary ware packer.

                    Charles and Mary Anne had two more sons, both born in Footscray:  Frank Orgill Gretton in 1914, and Arthur Ernest Gretton in 1920.

                    On the Australian 1914 electoral rolls, Charles and Mary Ann were living at 72 Moreland Street, Footscray, and in 1919 at 134 Cowper Street, Footscray, and Charles was a labourer.  In 1924, Charles was a sub foreman, living at 3, Ryan Street E, Footscray, Australia.  On a later electoral register, Charles was a foreman.  Footscray is a suburb of Melbourne, and developed into an industrial zone in the second half of the nineteenth century.

                    Charles died in Victoria in 1954 at the age of 77. His wife Mary Ann died in 1958.

                    Gretton obit 1954

                     

                    Charles and Mary Ann Gretton:

                    Charles and Mary Ann Gretton

                     

                    Leslie Charles Bloemfontein Gretton 1900-1955

                    Leslie was an electrician.   He married Ethel Christine Halliday, born in 1900 in Footscray, in 1927.  They had four children: Tom, Claire, Nancy and Frank. By 1943 they were living in Yallourn.  Yallourn, Victoria was a company town in Victoria, Australia built between the 1920s and 1950s to house employees of the State Electricity Commission of Victoria, who operated the nearby Yallourn Power Station complex. However, expansion of the adjacent open-cut brown coal mine led to the closure and removal of the town in the 1980s.

                    On the 1954 electoral registers, daughter Claire Elizabeth Gretton, occupation teacher, was living at the same address as Leslie and Ethel.

                    Leslie died in Yallourn in 1955, and Ethel nine years later in 1964, also in Yallourn.

                     

                    George Herbert Gretton 1910-1970

                    George married Florence May Hall in 1934 in Victoria, Australia.  In 1942 George was listed on the electoral roll as a grocer, likewise in 1949. In 1963 his occupation was a process worker, and in 1968 in Flinders, a horticultural advisor.

                    George died in Lang Lang, not far from Melbourne, in 1970.

                     

                    Frank Orgill Gretton 1914-

                    Arthur Ernest Gretton 1920-

                     

                    Orgills

                    John Orgill 1835-1911

                    John Orgill was Charles Herbert Gretton’s uncle.  He emigrated to Australia in 1865, and married Elizabeth Mary Gladstone 1845-1926 in Victoria in 1870. Their first child was born in December that year, in Dandenong. They had seven children, and their three sons all have the middle name Gladstone.

                    John Orgill was a councillor for the Shire of Dandenong in 1873, and between 1876 and 1879.

                    John Orgill:

                    John Orgill

                     

                    John Orgill obituary in the South Bourke and Mornington Journal, 21 December 1911:

                    John Orgill obit

                     

                     

                    John’s wife Elizabeth Orgill, a teacher and a “a public spirited lady” according to newspaper articles, opened a hydropathic hospital in Dandenong called Gladstone House.

                    Elizabeth Gladstone Orgill:

                    Elizabeth Gladstone Orgill

                     

                    On the Old Dandenong website:

                    Gladstone House hydropathic hospital on the corner of Langhorne and Foster streets (153 Foster Street) Dandenong opened in 1896, working on the theory of water therapy, no medicine or operations. Her husband passed away in 1911 at 77, around similar time Dr Barclay Thompson obtained control of the practice. Mrs Orgill remaining on in some capacity.

                    Elizabeth Mary Orgill (nee Gladstone) operated Gladstone House until at least 1911, along with another hydropathic hospital (Birthwood) on Cheltenham road. She was the daughter of William Gladstone (Nephew of William Ewart Gladstone, UK prime minister in 1874).

                    Around 1912 Dr A. E. Taylor took over the location from Dr. Barclay Thompson. Mrs Orgill was still working here but no longer controlled the practice, having given it up to Barclay. Taylor served as medical officer for the Shire for before his death in 1939. After Taylor’s death Dr. T. C. Reeves bought his practice in 1939, later that year being appointed medical officer,

                    Gladstone Road in Dandenong is named after her family, who owned and occupied a farming paddock in the area on former Police Paddock ground, the Police reserve having earlier been reduced back to Stud Road.

                    Hydropathy (now known as Hydrotherapy) and also called water cure, is a part of medicine and alternative medicine, in particular of naturopathy, occupational therapy and physiotherapy, that involves the use of water for pain relief and treatment.

                    Gladstone House, Dandenong:

                    Gladstone House

                     

                     

                    John’s brother Robert Orgill 1830-1915 also emigrated to Australia. I met (online) his great great grand daughter Lidya Orgill via the Old Dandenong facebook group.

                    John’s other brother Thomas Orgill 1833-1908 also emigrated to the same part of Australia.

                    Thomas Orgill:

                    Thomas Orgill

                     

                    One of Thomas Orgills sons was George Albert Orgill 1880-1949:

                    George Albert Orgill

                     

                    A letter was published in The South Bourke & Mornington Journal (Richmond, Victoria, Australia) on 17 Jun 1915, to Tom Orgill, Emerald Hill (South Melbourne) from hospital by his brother George Albert Orgill (4th Pioneers) describing landing of Covering Party prior to dawn invasion of Gallipoli:

                    George Albert Orgill letter

                     

                    Another brother Henry Orgill 1837-1916 was born in Measham and died in Dandenong, Australia. Henry was a bricklayer living in Measham on the 1861 census. Also living with his widowed mother Elizabeth at that address was his sister Sarah and her husband Richard Gretton, the baker (my great great grandparents). In October of that year he sailed to Melbourne.  His occupation was bricklayer on his death records in 1916.

                    Two of Henry’s sons, Arthur Garfield Orgill born 1888 and Ernest Alfred Orgill born 1880 were killed in action in 1917 and buried in Nord-Pas-de-Calais, France. Another son, Frederick Stanley Orgill, died in 1897 at the age of seven.

                    A fifth brother, William Orgill 1842-   sailed from Liverpool to Melbourne in 1861, at 19 years of age. Four years later in 1865 he sailed from Victoria, Australia to New Zealand.

                     

                    I assumed I had found all of the Orgill brothers who went to Australia, and resumed research on the Orgills in Measham, in England. A search in the British Newspaper Archives for Orgills in Measham revealed yet another Orgill brother who had gone to Australia.

                    Matthew Orgill 1828-1907 went to South Africa and to Australia, but returned to Measham.

                    The Orgill brothers had two sisters. One was my great great great grandmother Sarah, and the other was Hannah.  Hannah married Francis Hart in Measham. One of her sons, John Orgill Hart 1862-1909, was born in Measham.  On the 1881 census he was a 19 year old carpenters apprentice.  Two years later in 1883 he was listed as a joiner on the passenger list of the ship Illawarra, bound for Australia.   His occupation at the time of his death in Dandenong in 1909 was contractor.

                    An additional coincidental note about Dandenong: my step daughter Emily’s Australian partner is from Dandenong.

                     

                     

                    Housleys

                    Charles Housley 1823-1856

                    Charles Housley emigrated to Australia in 1851, the same year that his brother George emigrated to USA.  Charles is mentioned in the Narrative on the Letters by Barbara Housley, and appears in the Housley Letters chapters.

                     

                    Rushbys

                    George “Mike” Rushby 1933-

                    Mike moved to Australia from South Africa. His story is a separate chapter.

                    #6283
                    TracyTracy
                    Participant

                      Purdy Cousins

                       

                      My great grandmother Mary Ann Gilman Purdy was one of five children.  Her sister Ellen Purdy was a well traveled nurse, and her sister Kate Rushby was a publican whose son who went to Africa. But what of her eldest sister Elizabeth and her brother Richard?

                       

                      Elizabeth Purdy 1869-1905 married Benjamin George Little in 1892 in Basford, Nottinghamshire.  Their first child, Frieda Olive Little, was born in Eastwood in December 1896, and their second daughter Catherine Jane Little was born in Warrington, Cheshire, in 1898. A third daughter, Edna Francis Little was born in 1900, but died three months later.

                      When I noticed that this unidentified photograph in our family collection was taken by a photographer in Warrington,  and as no other family has been found in Warrington, I concluded that these two little girls are Frieda and Catherine:

                      Catherine and Frieda Little

                       

                      Benjamin Little, born in 1869, was the manager of a boot shop, according to the 1901 census, and a boot maker on the 1911 census. I found a photograph of Benjamin and Elizabeth Little on an ancestry website:

                      Benjamin and Elizabeth Little

                       

                      Frieda Olive Little 1896-1977 married Robert Warburton in 1924.

                      Frieda and Robert had two sons and a daughter, although one son died in infancy.  They lived in Leominster, in Herefordshire, but Frieda died in 1977 at Enfield Farm in Warrington, four years after the death of her husband Robert.

                      Catherine Jane Little 1899-1975 married Llewelyn Robert Prince 1884-1950.  They do not appear to have had any children.  Llewelyn was manager of the National Provinical Bank at Eltham in London, but died at Brook Cottage in Kingsland, Herefordshire.  His wifes aunt Ellen Purdy the nurse had also lived at Brook Cottage.  Ellen died in 1947, but her husband Frank Garbett was at the funeral:

                      Llewelyn Prince

                       

                      Richard Purdy 1877-1940

                      Richard was born in Eastwood, Nottinghamshire. When his mother Catherine died in 1884 Richard was six years old.  My great grandmother Mary Ann and her sister Ellen went to live with the Gilman’s in Buxton, but Richard and the two older sisters, Elizabeth and Kate, stayed with their father George Purdy, who remarried soon afterwards.

                      Richard married Ada Elizabeth Clarke in 1899.  In 1901 Richard was an earthenware packer at a pottery, and on the 1939 census he was a colliery dataller.  A dataller was a day wage man, paid on a daily basis for work done as required.

                      Richard and Ada had four children: Richard Baden Purdy 1900-1945, Winifred Maude 1903-1974, John Frederick 1907-1945, and Violet Gertrude 1910-1974.

                      Richard Baden Purdy married Ethel May Potter in Mansfield, Nottinghamshire, in 1926.  He was listed on the 1939 census as a colliery deputy.  In 1945 Richard Baden Purdy died as a result of injuries in a mine explosion.

                      Richard Baden Purdy

                       

                      John Frederick Purdy married Iris Merryweather in 1938. On the 1939 census John and Iris live in Arnold, Nottinghamshire, and John’s occupation is a colliery hewer.  Their daughter Barbara Elizabeth was born later that year.  John died in 1945, the same year as his brother Richard Baden Purdy. It is not known without purchasing the death certificate what the cause of death was.

                      A memorial was posted in the Nottingham Evening Post on 29 June 1948:

                      PURDY, loving memories, Richard Baden, accidentally killed June 29th 1945; John Frederick, died 1 April 1945; Richard Purdy, father, died December 1940. Too dearly loved to be forgotten. Mother, families.

                      Violet Gertrude Purdy married Sidney Garland in 1932 in Southwell, Nottinghamshire.  She died in Edwinstowe, Nottinghamshire, in 1974.

                      Winifred Maude Purdy married Bernard Fowler in Southwell in 1928.  She also died in 1974, in Mansfield.

                      The two brothers died the same year, in 1945, and the two sisters died the same year, in 1974.

                      #6281
                      TracyTracy
                      Participant

                        The Measham Thatchers

                        Orgills, Finches and Wards

                        Measham is a large village in north west Leicestershire, England, near the Derbyshire, Staffordshire and Warwickshire boundaries. Our family has a penchant for border straddling, and the Orgill’s of Measham take this a step further living on the boundaries of four counties.  Historically it was in an exclave of Derbyshire absorbed into Leicestershire in 1897, so once again we have two sets of county records to search.

                        ORGILL

                        Richard Gretton, the baker of Swadlincote and my great grandmother Florence Nightingale Grettons’ father, married Sarah Orgill (1840-1910) in 1861.

                        (Incidentally, Florence Nightingale Warren nee Gretton’s first child Hildred born in 1900 had the middle name Orgill. Florence’s brother John Orgill Gretton emigrated to USA.)

                        When they first married, they lived with Sarah’s widowed mother Elizabeth in Measham.  Elizabeth Orgill is listed on the 1861 census as a farmer of two acres.

                        Sarah Orgill’s father Matthew Orgill (1798-1859) was a thatcher, as was his father Matthew Orgill (1771-1852).

                        Matthew Orgill the elder left his property to his son Henry:

                        Matthew Orgills will

                         

                        Sarah’s mother Elizabeth (1803-1876) was also an Orgill before her marriage to Matthew.

                        According to Pigot & Co’s Commercial Directory for Derbyshire, in Measham in 1835 Elizabeth Orgill was a straw bonnet maker, an ideal occupation for a thatchers wife.

                        Matthew Orgill, thatcher, is listed in White’s directory in 1857, and other Orgill’s are mentioned in Measham:

                        Mary Orgill, straw hat maker; Henry Orgill, grocer; Daniel Orgill, painter; another Matthew Orgill is a coal merchant and wheelwright. Likewise a number of Orgill’s are listed in the directories for Measham in the subsequent years, as farmers, plumbers, painters, grocers, thatchers, wheelwrights, coal merchants and straw bonnet makers.

                         

                        Matthew and Elizabeth Orgill, Measham Baptist church:

                        Orgill grave

                         

                        According to a history of thatching, for every six or seven thatchers appearing in the 1851 census there are now less than one.  Another interesting fact in the history of thatched roofs (via thatchinginfo dot com):

                        The Watling Street Divide…
                        The biggest dividing line of all, that between the angular thatching of the Northern and Eastern traditions and the rounded Southern style, still roughly follows a very ancient line; the northern section of the old Roman road of Watling Street, the modern A5. Seemingly of little significance today; this was once the border between two peoples. Agreed in the peace treaty, between the Saxon King Alfred and Guthrum, the Danish Viking leader; over eleven centuries ago.
                        After making their peace, various Viking armies settled down, to the north and east of the old road; firstly, in what was known as The Danelaw and later in Norse kingdoms, based in York. They quickly formed a class of farmers and peasants. Although the Saxon kings soon regained this area; these people stayed put. Their influence is still seen, for example, in the widespread use of boarded gable ends, so common in Danish thatching.
                        Over time, the Southern and Northern traditions have slipped across the old road, by a few miles either way. But even today, travelling across the old highway will often bring the differing thatching traditions quickly into view.

                        Pear Tree Cottage, Bosworth Road, Measham. 1900.  Matthew Orgill was a thatcher living on Bosworth road.

                        Bosworth road

                         

                        FINCH

                        Matthew the elder married Frances Finch 1771-1848, also of Measham.  On the 1851 census Matthew is an 80 year old thatcher living with his daughter Mary and her husband Samuel Piner, a coal miner.

                        Henry Finch 1743- and Mary Dennis 1749- , both of Measham, were Frances parents.  Henry’s father was also Henry Finch, born in 1707 in Measham, and he married Frances Ward, also born in 1707, and also from Measham.

                        WARD

                         

                        The ancient boundary between the kingdom of Mercia and the Danelaw

                        I didn’t find much information on the history of Measham, but I did find a great deal of ancient history on the nearby village of Appleby Magna, two miles away.  The parish records indicate that the Ward and Finch branches of our family date back to the 1500’s in the village, and we can assume that the ancient history of the neighbouring village would be relevant to our history.

                        There is evidence of human settlement in Appleby from the early Neolithic period, 6,000 years ago, and there are also Iron Age and Bronze Age sites in the vicinity.  There is evidence of further activity within the village during the Roman period, including evidence of a villa or farm and a temple.  Appleby is near three known Roman roads: Watling Street, 10 miles south of the village; Bath Lane, 5 miles north of the village; and Salt Street, which forms the parish’s south boundary.

                        But it is the Scandinavian invasions that are particularly intriguing, with regard to my 58% Scandinavian DNA (and virtually 100% Midlands England ancestry). Repton is 13 miles from Measham. In the early 10th century Chilcote, Measham and Willesley were part of the royal Derbyshire estate of Repton.

                        The arrival of Scandinavian invaders in the second half of the ninth century caused widespread havoc throughout northern England. By the AD 870s the Danish army was occupying Mercia and it spent the winter of 873-74 at Repton, the headquarters of the Mercian kings. The events are recorded in detail in the Peterborough manuscript of the Anglo-Saxon Chronicles…

                        Although the Danes held power for only 40 years, a strong, even subversive, Danish element remained in the population for many years to come. 

                        A Scandinavian influence may also be detected among the field names of the parish. Although many fields have relatively modern names, some clearly have elements which reach back to the time of Danish incursion and control.

                        The Borders:

                        The name ‘aeppel byg’ is given in the will of Wulfic Spot of AD 1004……………..The decision at Domesday to include this land in Derbyshire, as one of Burton Abbey’s Derbyshire manors, resulted in the division of the village of Appleby Magna between the counties of Leicester and Derby for the next 800 years

                        Richard Dunmore’s Appleby Magma website.

                        This division of Appleby between Leicestershire and Derbyshire persisted from Domesday until 1897, when the recently created county councils (1889) simplified the administration of many villages in this area by a radical realignment of the boundary:

                        Appleby

                         

                        I would appear that our family not only straddle county borders, but straddle ancient kingdom borders as well.  This particular branch of the family (we assume, given the absence of written records that far back) were living on the edge of the Danelaw and a strong element of the Danes survives to this day in my DNA.

                         

                        #6272
                        TracyTracy
                        Participant

                          The Housley Letters

                          The Carringtons

                          Carrington Farm, Smalley:

                          Carrington Farm

                           

                          Ellen Carrington was born in 1795. Her father William Carrington 1755-1833 was from Smalley. Her mother Mary Malkin 1765-1838 was from Ellastone, in Staffordshire.  Ellastone is on the Derbyshire border and very close to Ashboure, where Ellen married William Housley.

                           

                          From Barbara Housley’s Narrative on the Letters:

                          Ellen’s family was evidently rather prominant in Smalley. Two Carringtons (John and William) served on the Parish Council in 1794. Parish records are full of Carrington marriages and christenings.

                          The letters refer to a variety of “uncles” who were probably Ellen’s brothers, but could be her uncles. These include:

                          RICHARD

                          Probably the youngest Uncle, and certainly the most significant, is Richard. He was a trustee for some of the property which needed to be settled following Ellen’s death. Anne wrote in 1854 that Uncle Richard “has got a new house built” and his daughters are “fine dashing young ladies–the belles of Smalley.” Then she added, “Aunt looks as old as my mother.”

                          Richard was born somewhere between 1808 and 1812. Since Richard was a contemporary of the older Housley children, “Aunt,” who was three years younger, should not look so old!

                          Richard Carrington and Harriet Faulkner were married in Repton in 1833. A daughter Elizabeth was baptised March 24, 1834. In July 1872, Joseph wrote: “Elizabeth is married too and a large family and is living in Uncle Thomas’s house for he is dead.” Elizabeth married Ayres (Eyres) Clayton of Lascoe. His occupation was listed as joiner and shopkeeper. They were married before 1864 since Elizabeth Clayton witnessed her sister’s marriage. Their children in April 1871 were Selina (1863), Agnes Maria (1866) and Elizabeth Ann (1868). A fourth daughter, Alice Augusta, was born in 1872 or 1873, probably by July 1872 to fit Joseph’s description “large family”! A son Charles Richard was born in 1880.

                          An Elizabeth Ann Clayton married John Arthur Woodhouse on May 12, 1913. He was a carpenter. His father was a miner. Elizabeth Ann’s father, Ayres, was also a carpenter. John Arthur’s age was given as 25. Elizabeth Ann’s age was given as 33 or 38. However, if she was born in 1868, her age would be 45. Possibly this is another case of a child being named for a deceased sibling. If she were 38 and born in 1875, she would fill the gap between Alice Augusta and Charles Richard.

                          Selina Clayton, who would have been 18, is not listed in the household in 1881. She died on June 11, 1914 at age 51. Agnes Maria Clayton died at the age of 25 and was buried March 31, 1891. Charles Richard died at the age of 5 and was buried on February 4, 1886. A Charles James Clayton, 18 months, was buried June 8, 1889 in Heanor.

                          Richard Carrington’s second daughter, Selina, born in 1837, married Walker Martin (b.1835) on February 11, 1864 and they were living at Kidsley Park Farm in 1872, according to a letter from Joseph, and, according to the census, were still there in 1881. This 100 acre farm was formerly the home of Daniel Smith and his daughter Elizabeth Davy Barber. Selina and Walker had at least five children: Elizabeth Ann (1865), Harriet Georgianna (1866/7), Alice Marian (September 6, 1868), Philip Richard (1870), and Walker (1873). In December 1972, Joseph mentioned the death of Philip Walker, a farmer of Prospect Farm, Shipley. This was probably Walker Martin’s grandfather, since Walker was born in Shipley. The stock was to be sold the following Monday, but his daughter (Walker’s mother?) died the next day. Walker’s father was named Thomas. An Annie Georgianna Martin age 13 of Shipley died in April of 1859.

                          Selina Martin died on October 29, 1906 but her estate was not settled until November 14, 1910. Her gross estate was worth L223.56. Her son Walker and her daughter Harriet Georgiana were her trustees and executers. Walker was to get Selina’s half of Richard’s farm. Harriet Georgiana and Alice Marian were to be allowed to live with him. Philip Richard received L25. Elizabeth Ann was already married to someone named Smith.

                          Richard and Harriet may also have had a son George. In 1851 a Harriet Carrington and her three year old son George were living with her step-father John Benniston in Heanor. John may have been recently widowed and needed her help. Or, the Carrington home may have been inadequate since Anne reported a new one was built by 1854. Selina’s second daughter’s name testifies to the presence of a “George” in the family! Could the death of this son account for the haggard appearance Anne described when she wrote: “Aunt looks as old as my mother?”
                          Harriet was buried May 19, 1866. She was 55 when she died.

                          In 1881, Georgianna then 14, was living with her grandfather and his niece, Zilpah Cooper, age 38–who lived with Richard on his 63 acre farm as early as 1871. A Zilpah, daughter of William and Elizabeth, was christened October 1843. Her brother, William Walter, was christened in 1846 and married Anna Maria Saint in 1873. There are four Selina Coopers–one had a son William Thomas Bartrun Cooper christened in 1864; another had a son William Cooper christened in 1873.

                          Our Zilpah was born in Bretley 1843. She died at age 49 and was buried on September 24, 1892. In her will, which was witnessed by Selina Martin, Zilpah’s sister, Frances Elizabeth Cleave, wife of Horatio Cleave of Leicester is mentioned. James Eley and Francis Darwin Huish (Richard’s soliciter) were executers.

                          Richard died June 10, 1892, and was buried on June 13. He was 85. As might be expected, Richard’s will was complicated. Harriet Georgiana Martin and Zilpah Cooper were to share his farm. If neither wanted to live there it was to go to Georgiana’s cousin Selina Clayton. However, Zilpah died soon after Richard. Originally, he left his piano, parlor and best bedroom furniture to his daughter Elizabeth Clayton. Then he revoked everything but the piano. He arranged for the payment of £150 which he owed. Later he added a codicil explaining that the debt was paid but he had borrowed £200 from someone else to do it!

                          Richard left a good deal of property including: The house and garden in Smalley occupied by Eyres Clayton with four messuages and gardens adjoining and large garden below and three messuages at the south end of the row with the frame work knitters shop and garden adjoining; a dwelling house used as a public house with a close of land; a small cottage and garden and four cottages and shop and gardens.

                           

                          THOMAS

                          In August 1854, Anne wrote “Uncle Thomas is about as usual.” A Thomas Carrington married a Priscilla Walker in 1810.

                          Their children were baptised in August 1830 at the same time as the Housley children who at that time ranged in age from 3 to 17. The oldest of Thomas and Priscilla’s children, Henry, was probably at least 17 as he was married by 1836. Their youngest son, William Thomas, born 1830, may have been Mary Ellen Weston’s beau. However, the only Richard whose christening is recorded (1820), was the son of Thomas and Lucy. In 1872 Joseph reported that Richard’s daughter Elizabeth was married and living in Uncle Thomas’s house. In 1851, Alfred Smith lived in house 25, Foulks lived in 26, Thomas and Priscilla lived in 27, Bennetts lived in 28, Allard lived in 29 and Day lived in 30. Thomas and Priscilla do not appear in 1861. In 1871 Elizabeth Ann and Ayres Clayton lived in House 54. None of the families listed as neighbors in 1851 remained. However, Joseph Carrington, who lived in house 19 in 1851, lived in house 51 in 1871.

                           

                          JOHN

                          In August 1854, Anne wrote: “Uncle John is with Will and Frank has been home in a comfortable place in Cotmanhay.” Although John and William are two of the most popular Carrington names, only two John’s have sons named William. John and Rachel Buxton Carrington had a son William christened in 1788. At the time of the letters this John would have been over 100 years old. Their son John and his wife Ann had a son William who was born in 1805. However, this William age 46 was living with his widowed mother in 1851. A Robert Carrington and his wife Ann had a son John born 1n 1805. He would be the right age to be a brother to Francis Carrington discussed below. This John was living with his widowed mother in 1851 and was unmarried. There are no known Williams in this family grouping. A William Carrington of undiscovered parentage was born in 1821. It is also possible that the Will in question was Anne’s brother Will Housley.

                          –Two Francis Carringtons appear in the 1841 census both of them aged 35. One is living with Richard and Harriet Carrington. The other is living next door to Samuel and Ellen Carrington Kerry (the trustee for “father’s will”!). The next name in this sequence is John Carrington age 15 who does not seem to live with anyone! but may be part of the Kerry household.

                          FRANK (see above)

                          While Anne did not preface her mention of the name Frank with an “Uncle,” Joseph referred to Uncle Frank and James Carrington in the same sentence. A James Carrington was born in 1814 and had a wife Sarah. He worked as a framework knitter. James may have been a son of William and Anne Carrington. He lived near Richard according to the 1861 census. Other children of William and Anne are Hannah (1811), William (1815), John (1816), and Ann (1818). An Ann Carrington married a Frank Buxton in 1819. This might be “Uncle Frank.”

                          An Ellen Carrington was born to John and Rachel Carrington in 1785. On October 25, 1809, a Samuel Kerry married an Ellen Carrington. However this Samuel Kerry is not the trustee involved in settling Ellen’s estate. John Carrington died July 1815.

                          William and Mary Carrington:

                          William Carrington

                          #6268
                          TracyTracy
                          Participant

                            From Tanganyika with Love

                            continued part 9

                            With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                            Lyamungu 3rd January 1945

                            Dearest Family.

                            We had a novel Christmas this year. We decided to avoid the expense of
                            entertaining and being entertained at Lyamungu, and went off to spend Christmas
                            camping in a forest on the Western slopes of Kilimanjaro. George decided to combine
                            business with pleasure and in this way we were able to use Government transport.
                            We set out the day before Christmas day and drove along the road which skirts
                            the slopes of Kilimanjaro and first visited a beautiful farm where Philip Teare, the ex
                            Game Warden, and his wife Mary are staying. We had afternoon tea with them and then
                            drove on in to the natural forest above the estate and pitched our tent beside a small
                            clear mountain stream. We decorated the tent with paper streamers and a few small
                            balloons and John found a small tree of the traditional shape which we decorated where
                            it stood with tinsel and small ornaments.

                            We put our beer, cool drinks for the children and bottles of fresh milk from Simba
                            Estate, in the stream and on Christmas morning they were as cold as if they had been in
                            the refrigerator all night. There were not many presents for the children, there never are,
                            but they do not seem to mind and are well satisfied with a couple of balloons apiece,
                            sweets, tin whistles and a book each.

                            George entertain the children before breakfast. He can make a magical thing out
                            of the most ordinary balloon. The children watched entranced as he drew on his pipe
                            and then blew the smoke into the balloon. He then pinched the neck of the balloon
                            between thumb and forefinger and released the smoke in little puffs. Occasionally the
                            balloon ejected a perfect smoke ring and the forest rang with shouts of “Do it again
                            Daddy.” Another trick was to blow up the balloon to maximum size and then twist the
                            neck tightly before releasing. Before subsiding the balloon darted about in a crazy
                            fashion causing great hilarity. Such fun, at the cost of a few pence.

                            After breakfast George went off to fish for trout. John and Jim decided that they
                            also wished to fish so we made rods out of sticks and string and bent pins and they
                            fished happily, but of course quite unsuccessfully, for hours. Both of course fell into the
                            stream and got soaked, but I was prepared for this, and the little stream was so shallow
                            that they could not come to any harm. Henry played happily in the sand and I had a
                            most peaceful morning.

                            Hamisi roasted a chicken in a pot over the camp fire and the jelly set beautifully in the
                            stream. So we had grilled trout and chicken for our Christmas dinner. I had of course
                            taken an iced cake for the occasion and, all in all, it was a very successful Christmas day.
                            On Boxing day we drove down to the plains where George was to investigate a
                            report of game poaching near the Ngassari Furrow. This is a very long ditch which has
                            been dug by the Government for watering the Masai stock in the area. It is also used by
                            game and we saw herds of zebra and wildebeest, and some Grant’s Gazelle and
                            giraffe, all comparatively tame. At one point a small herd of zebra raced beside the lorry
                            apparently enjoying the fun of a gallop. They were all sleek and fat and looked wild and
                            beautiful in action.

                            We camped a considerable distance from the water but this precaution did not
                            save us from the mosquitoes which launched a vicious attack on us after sunset, so that
                            we took to our beds unusually early. They were on the job again when we got up at
                            sunrise so I was very glad when we were once more on our way home.

                            “I like Christmas safari. Much nicer that silly old party,” said John. I agree but I think
                            it is time that our children learned to play happily with others. There are no other young
                            children at Lyamungu though there are two older boys and a girl who go to boarding
                            school in Nairobi.

                            On New Years Day two Army Officers from the military camp at Moshi, came for
                            tea and to talk game hunting with George. I think they rather enjoy visiting a home and
                            seeing children and pets around.

                            Eleanor.

                            Lyamungu 14 May 1945

                            Dearest Family.

                            So the war in Europe is over at last. It is such marvellous news that I can hardly
                            believe it. To think that as soon as George can get leave we will go to England and
                            bring Ann and George home with us to Tanganyika. When we know when this leave can
                            be arranged we will want Kate to join us here as of course she must go with us to
                            England to meet George’s family. She has become so much a part of your lives that I
                            know it will be a wrench for you to give her up but I know that you will all be happy to
                            think that soon our family will be reunited.

                            The V.E. celebrations passed off quietly here. We all went to Moshi to see the
                            Victory Parade of the King’s African Rifles and in the evening we went to a celebration
                            dinner at the Game Warden’s house. Besides ourselves the Moores had invited the
                            Commanding Officer from Moshi and a junior officer. We had a very good dinner and
                            many toasts including one to Mrs Moore’s brother, Oliver Milton who is fighting in Burma
                            and has recently been awarded the Military Cross.

                            There was also a celebration party for the children in the grounds of the Moshi
                            Club. Such a spread! I think John and Jim sampled everything. We mothers were
                            having our tea separately and a friend laughingly told me to turn around and have a look.
                            I did, and saw the long tea tables now deserted by all the children but my two sons who
                            were still eating steadily, and finding the party more exciting than the game of Musical
                            Bumps into which all the other children had entered with enthusiasm.

                            There was also an extremely good puppet show put on by the Italian prisoners
                            of war from the camp at Moshi. They had made all the puppets which included well
                            loved characters like Snow White and the Seven Dwarfs and the Babes in the Wood as
                            well as more sophisticated ones like an irritable pianist and a would be prima donna. The
                            most popular puppets with the children were a native askari and his family – a very
                            happy little scene. I have never before seen a puppet show and was as entranced as
                            the children. It is amazing what clever manipulation and lighting can do. I believe that the
                            Italians mean to take their puppets to Nairobi and am glad to think that there, they will
                            have larger audiences to appreciate their art.

                            George has just come in, and I paused in my writing to ask him for the hundredth
                            time when he thinks we will get leave. He says I must be patient because it may be a
                            year before our turn comes. Shipping will be disorganised for months to come and we
                            cannot expect priority simply because we have been separated so long from our
                            children. The same situation applies to scores of other Government Officials.
                            I have decided to write the story of my childhood in South Africa and about our
                            life together in Tanganyika up to the time Ann and George left the country. I know you
                            will have told Kate these stories, but Ann and George were so very little when they left
                            home that I fear that they cannot remember much.

                            My Mother-in-law will have told them about their father but she can tell them little
                            about me. I shall send them one chapter of my story each month in the hope that they
                            may be interested and not feel that I am a stranger when at last we meet again.

                            Eleanor.

                            Lyamungu 19th September 1945

                            Dearest Family.

                            In a months time we will be saying good-bye to Lyamungu. George is to be
                            transferred to Mbeya and I am delighted, not only as I look upon Mbeya as home, but
                            because there is now a primary school there which John can attend. I feel he will make
                            much better progress in his lessons when he realises that all children of his age attend
                            school. At present he is putting up a strong resistance to learning to read and spell, but
                            he writes very neatly, does his sums accurately and shows a real talent for drawing. If
                            only he had the will to learn I feel he would do very well.

                            Jim now just four, is too young for lessons but too intelligent to be interested in
                            the ayah’s attempts at entertainment. Yes I’ve had to engage a native girl to look after
                            Henry from 9 am to 12.30 when I supervise John’s Correspondence Course. She is
                            clean and amiable, but like most African women she has no initiative at all when it comes
                            to entertaining children. Most African men and youths are good at this.

                            I don’t regret our stay at Lyamungu. It is a beautiful spot and the change to the
                            cooler climate after the heat of Morogoro has been good for all the children. John is still
                            tall for his age but not so thin as he was and much less pale. He is a handsome little lad
                            with his large brown eyes in striking contrast to his fair hair. He is wary of strangers but
                            very observant and quite uncanny in the way he sums up people. He seldom gets up
                            to mischief but I have a feeling he eggs Jim on. Not that Jim needs egging.

                            Jim has an absolute flair for mischief but it is all done in such an artless manner that
                            it is not easy to punish him. He is a very sturdy child with a cap of almost black silky hair,
                            eyes brown, like mine, and a large mouth which is quick to smile and show most beautiful
                            white and even teeth. He is most popular with all the native servants and the Game
                            Scouts. The servants call Jim, ‘Bwana Tembo’ (Mr Elephant) because of his sturdy
                            build.

                            Henry, now nearly two years old, is quite different from the other two in
                            appearance. He is fair complexioned and fair haired like Ann and Kate, with large, black
                            lashed, light grey eyes. He is a good child, not so merry as Jim was at his age, nor as
                            shy as John was. He seldom cries, does not care to be cuddled and is independent and
                            strong willed. The servants call Henry, ‘Bwana Ndizi’ (Mr Banana) because he has an
                            inexhaustible appetite for this fruit. Fortunately they are very inexpensive here. We buy
                            an entire bunch which hangs from a beam on the back verandah, and pluck off the
                            bananas as they ripen. This way there is no waste and the fruit never gets bruised as it
                            does in greengrocers shops in South Africa. Our three boys make a delightful and
                            interesting trio and I do wish you could see them for yourselves.

                            We are delighted with the really beautiful photograph of Kate. She is an
                            extraordinarily pretty child and looks so happy and healthy and a great credit to you.
                            Now that we will be living in Mbeya with a school on the doorstep I hope that we will
                            soon be able to arrange for her return home.

                            Eleanor.

                            c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 30th October 1945

                            Dearest Family.

                            How nice to be able to write c/o Game Dept. Mbeya at the head of my letters.
                            We arrived here safely after a rather tiresome journey and are installed in a tiny house on
                            the edge of the township.

                            We left Lyamungu early on the morning of the 22nd. Most of our goods had
                            been packed on the big Ford lorry the previous evening, but there were the usual
                            delays and farewells. Of our servants, only the cook, Hamisi, accompanied us to
                            Mbeya. Japhet, Tovelo and the ayah had to be paid off and largesse handed out.
                            Tovelo’s granny had come, bringing a gift of bananas, and she also brought her little
                            granddaughter to present a bunch of flowers. The child’s little scolded behind is now
                            completely healed. Gifts had to be found for them too.

                            At last we were all aboard and what a squash it was! Our few pieces of furniture
                            and packing cases and trunks, the cook, his wife, the driver and the turney boy, who
                            were to take the truck back to Lyamungu, and all their bits and pieces, bunches of
                            bananas and Fanny the dog were all crammed into the body of the lorry. George, the
                            children and I were jammed together in the cab. Before we left George looked
                            dubiously at the tyres which were very worn and said gloomily that he thought it most
                            unlikely that we would make our destination, Dodoma.

                            Too true! Shortly after midday, near Kwakachinja, we blew a back tyre and there
                            was a tedious delay in the heat whilst the wheel was changed. We were now without a
                            spare tyre and George said that he would not risk taking the Ford further than Babati,
                            which is less than half way to Dodoma. He drove very slowly and cautiously to Babati
                            where he arranged with Sher Mohammed, an Indian trader, for a lorry to take us to
                            Dodoma the next morning.

                            It had been our intention to spend the night at the furnished Government
                            Resthouse at Babati but when we got there we found that it was already occupied by
                            several District Officers who had assembled for a conference. So, feeling rather
                            disgruntled, we all piled back into the lorry and drove on to a place called Bereku where
                            we spent an uncomfortable night in a tumbledown hut.

                            Before dawn next morning Sher Mohammed’s lorry drove up, and there was a
                            scramble to dress by the light of a storm lamp. The lorry was a very dilapidated one and
                            there was already a native woman passenger in the cab. I felt so tired after an almost
                            sleepless night that I decided to sit between the driver and this woman with the sleeping
                            Henry on my knee. It was as well I did, because I soon found myself dosing off and
                            drooping over towards the woman. Had she not been there I might easily have fallen
                            out as the battered cab had no door. However I was alert enough when daylight came
                            and changed places with the woman to our mutual relief. She was now able to converse
                            with the African driver and I was able to enjoy the scenery and the fresh air!
                            George, John and Jim were less comfortable. They sat in the lorry behind the
                            cab hemmed in by packing cases. As the lorry was an open one the sun beat down
                            unmercifully upon them until George, ever resourceful, moved a table to the front of the
                            truck. The two boys crouched under this and so got shelter from the sun but they still had
                            to endure the dust. Fanny complicated things by getting car sick and with one thing and
                            another we were all jolly glad to get to Dodoma.

                            We spent the night at the Dodoma Hotel and after hot baths, a good meal and a
                            good nights rest we cheerfully boarded a bus of the Tanganyika Bus Service next
                            morning to continue our journey to Mbeya. The rest of the journey was uneventful. We slept two nights on the road, the first at Iringa Hotel and the second at Chimala. We
                            reached Mbeya on the 27th.

                            I was rather taken aback when I first saw the little house which has been allocated
                            to us. I had become accustomed to the spacious houses we had in Morogoro and
                            Lyamungu. However though the house is tiny it is secluded and has a long garden
                            sloping down to the road in front and another long strip sloping up behind. The front
                            garden is shaded by several large cypress and eucalyptus trees but the garden behind
                            the house has no shade and consists mainly of humpy beds planted with hundreds of
                            carnations sadly in need of debudding. I believe that the previous Game Ranger’s wife
                            cultivated the carnations and, by selling them, raised money for War Funds.
                            Like our own first home, this little house is built of sun dried brick. Its original
                            owners were Germans. It is now rented to the Government by the Custodian of Enemy
                            Property, and George has his office in another ex German house.

                            This afternoon we drove to the school to arrange about enrolling John there. The
                            school is about four miles out of town. It was built by the German settlers in the late
                            1930’s and they were justifiably proud of it. It consists of a great assembly hall and
                            classrooms in one block and there are several attractive single storied dormitories. This
                            school was taken over by the Government when the Germans were interned on the
                            outbreak of war and many improvements have been made to the original buildings. The
                            school certainly looks very attractive now with its grassed playing fields and its lawns and
                            bright flower beds.

                            The Union Jack flies from a tall flagpole in front of the Hall and all traces of the
                            schools German origin have been firmly erased. We met the Headmaster, Mr
                            Wallington, and his wife and some members of the staff. The school is co-educational
                            and caters for children from the age of seven to standard six. The leaving age is elastic
                            owing to the fact that many Tanganyika children started school very late because of lack
                            of educational facilities in this country.

                            The married members of the staff have their own cottages in the grounds. The
                            Matrons have quarters attached to the dormitories for which they are responsible. I felt
                            most enthusiastic about the school until I discovered that the Headmaster is adamant
                            upon one subject. He utterly refuses to take any day pupils at the school. So now our
                            poor reserved Johnny will have to adjust himself to boarding school life.
                            We have arranged that he will start school on November 5th and I shall be very
                            busy trying to assemble his school uniform at short notice. The clothing list is sensible.
                            Boys wear khaki shirts and shorts on weekdays with knitted scarlet jerseys when the
                            weather is cold. On Sundays they wear grey flannel shorts and blazers with the silver
                            and scarlet school tie.

                            Mbeya looks dusty, brown and dry after the lush evergreen vegetation of
                            Lyamungu, but I prefer this drier climate and there are still mountains to please the eye.
                            In fact the lower slopes of Lolesa Mountain rise at the upper end of our garden.

                            Eleanor.

                            c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 21st November 1945

                            Dearest Family.

                            We’re quite settled in now and I have got the little house fixed up to my
                            satisfaction. I have engaged a rather uncouth looking houseboy but he is strong and
                            capable and now that I am not tied down in the mornings by John’s lessons I am able to
                            go out occasionally in the mornings and take Jim and Henry to play with other children.
                            They do not show any great enthusiasm but are not shy by nature as John is.
                            I have had a good deal of heartache over putting John to boarding school. It
                            would have been different had he been used to the company of children outside his
                            own family, or if he had even known one child there. However he seems to be adjusting
                            himself to the life, though slowly. At least he looks well and tidy and I am quite sure that
                            he is well looked after.

                            I must confess that when the time came for John to go to school I simply did not
                            have the courage to take him and he went alone with George, looking so smart in his
                            new uniform – but his little face so bleak. The next day, Sunday, was visiting day but the
                            Headmaster suggested that we should give John time to settle down and not visit him
                            until Wednesday.

                            When we drove up to the school I spied John on the far side of the field walking
                            all alone. Instead of running up with glad greetings, as I had expected, he came almost
                            reluctently and had little to say. I asked him to show me his dormitory and classroom and
                            he did so politely as though I were a stranger. At last he volunteered some information.
                            “Mummy,” he said in an awed voice, Do you know on the night I came here they burnt a
                            man! They had a big fire and they burnt him.” After a blank moment the penny dropped.
                            Of course John had started school and November the fifth but it had never entered my
                            head to tell him about that infamous character, Guy Fawkes!

                            I asked John’s Matron how he had settled down. “Well”, she said thoughtfully,
                            “John is very good and has not cried as many of the juniors do when they first come
                            here, but he seems to keep to himself all the time.” I went home very discouraged but
                            on the Sunday John came running up with another lad of about his own age.” This is my
                            friend Marks,” he announced proudly. I could have hugged Marks.

                            Mbeya is very different from the small settlement we knew in the early 1930’s.
                            Gone are all the colourful characters from the Lupa diggings for the alluvial claims are all
                            worked out now, gone also are our old friends the Menzies from the Pub and also most
                            of the Government Officials we used to know. Mbeya has lost its character of a frontier
                            township and has become almost suburban.

                            The social life revolves around two places, the Club and the school. The Club
                            which started out as a little two roomed building, has been expanded and the golf
                            course improved. There are also tennis courts and a good library considering the size of
                            the community. There are frequent parties and dances, though most of the club revenue
                            comes from Bar profits. The parties are relatively sober affairs compared with the parties
                            of the 1930’s.

                            The school provides entertainment of another kind. Both Mr and Mrs Wallington
                            are good amateur actors and I am told that they run an Amateur Dramatic Society. Every
                            Wednesday afternoon there is a hockey match at the school. Mbeya town versus a
                            mixed team of staff and scholars. The match attracts almost the whole European
                            population of Mbeya. Some go to play hockey, others to watch, and others to snatch
                            the opportunity to visit their children. I shall have to try to arrange a lift to school when
                            George is away on safari.

                            I have now met most of the local women and gladly renewed an old friendship
                            with Sheilagh Waring whom I knew two years ago at Morogoro. Sheilagh and I have
                            much in common, the same disregard for the trappings of civilisation, the same sense of
                            the ludicrous, and children. She has eight to our six and she has also been cut off by the
                            war from two of her children. Sheilagh looks too young and pretty to be the mother of so
                            large a family and is, in fact, several years younger than I am. her husband, Donald, is a
                            large quiet man who, as far as I can judge takes life seriously.

                            Our next door neighbours are the Bank Manager and his wife, a very pleasant
                            couple though we seldom meet. I have however had correspondence with the Bank
                            Manager. Early on Saturday afternoon their houseboy brought a note. It informed me
                            that my son was disturbing his rest by precipitating a heart attack. Was I aware that my
                            son was about 30 feet up in a tree and balanced on a twig? I ran out and,sure enough,
                            there was Jim, right at the top of the tallest eucalyptus tree. It would be the one with the
                            mound of stones at the bottom! You should have heard me fluting in my most
                            wheedling voice. “Sweets, Jimmy, come down slowly dear, I’ve some nice sweets for
                            you.”

                            I’ll bet that little story makes you smile. I remember how often you have told me
                            how, as a child, I used to make your hearts turn over because I had no fear of heights
                            and how I used to say, “But that is silly, I won’t fall.” I know now only too well, how you
                            must have felt.

                            Eleanor.

                            c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 14th January 1946

                            Dearest Family.

                            I hope that by now you have my telegram to say that Kate got home safely
                            yesterday. It was wonderful to have her back and what a beautiful child she is! Kate
                            seems to have enjoyed the train journey with Miss Craig, in spite of the tears she tells
                            me she shed when she said good-bye to you. She also seems to have felt quite at
                            home with the Hopleys at Salisbury. She flew from Salisbury in a small Dove aircraft
                            and they had a smooth passage though Kate was a little airsick.

                            I was so excited about her home coming! This house is so tiny that I had to turn
                            out the little store room to make a bedroom for her. With a fresh coat of whitewash and
                            pretty sprigged curtains and matching bedspread, borrowed from Sheilagh Waring, the
                            tiny room looks most attractive. I had also iced a cake, made ice-cream and jelly and
                            bought crackers for the table so that Kate’s home coming tea could be a proper little
                            celebration.

                            I was pleased with my preparations and then, a few hours before the plane was
                            due, my crowned front tooth dropped out, peg and all! When my houseboy wants to
                            describe something very tatty, he calls it “Second-hand Kabisa.” Kabisa meaning
                            absolutely. That is an apt description of how I looked and felt. I decided to try some
                            emergency dentistry. I think you know our nearest dentist is at Dar es Salaam five
                            hundred miles away.

                            First I carefully dried the tooth and with a match stick covered the peg and base
                            with Durofix. I then took the infants rubber bulb enema, sucked up some heat from a
                            candle flame and pumped it into the cavity before filling that with Durofix. Then hopefully
                            I stuck the tooth in its former position and held it in place for several minutes. No good. I
                            sent the houseboy to a shop for Scotine and tried the whole process again. No good
                            either.

                            When George came home for lunch I appealed to him for advice. He jokingly
                            suggested that a maize seed jammed into the space would probably work, but when
                            he saw that I really was upset he produced some chewing gum and suggested that I
                            should try that . I did and that worked long enough for my first smile anyway.
                            George and the three boys went to meet Kate but I remained at home to
                            welcome her there. I was afraid that after all this time away Kate might be reluctant to
                            rejoin the family but she threw her arms around me and said “Oh Mummy,” We both
                            shed a few tears and then we both felt fine.

                            How gay Kate is, and what an infectious laugh she has! The boys follow her
                            around in admiration. John in fact asked me, “Is Kate a Princess?” When I said
                            “Goodness no, Johnny, she’s your sister,” he explained himself by saying, “Well, she
                            has such golden hair.” Kate was less complementary. When I tucked her in bed last night
                            she said, “Mummy, I didn’t expect my little brothers to be so yellow!” All three boys
                            have been taking a course of Atebrin, an anti-malarial drug which tinges skin and eyeballs
                            yellow.

                            So now our tiny house is bursting at its seams and how good it feels to have one
                            more child under our roof. We are booked to sail for England in May and when we return
                            we will have Ann and George home too. Then I shall feel really content.

                            Eleanor.

                            c/o Game Dept. Mbeya. 2nd March 1946

                            Dearest Family.

                            My life just now is uneventful but very busy. I am sewing hard and knitting fast to
                            try to get together some warm clothes for our leave in England. This is not a simple
                            matter because woollen materials are in short supply and very expensive, and now that
                            we have boarding school fees to pay for both Kate and John we have to budget very
                            carefully indeed.

                            Kate seems happy at school. She makes friends easily and seems to enjoy
                            communal life. John also seems reconciled to school now that Kate is there. He no
                            longer feels that he is the only exile in the family. He seems to rub along with the other
                            boys of his age and has a couple of close friends. Although Mbeya School is coeducational
                            the smaller boys and girls keep strictly apart. It is considered extremely
                            cissy to play with girls.

                            The local children are allowed to go home on Sundays after church and may bring
                            friends home with them for the day. Both John and Kate do this and Sunday is a very
                            busy day for me. The children come home in their Sunday best but bring play clothes to
                            change into. There is always a scramble to get them to bath and change again in time to
                            deliver them to the school by 6 o’clock.

                            When George is home we go out to the school for the morning service. This is
                            taken by the Headmaster Mr Wallington, and is very enjoyable. There is an excellent
                            school choir to lead the singing. The service is the Church of England one, but is
                            attended by children of all denominations, except the Roman Catholics. I don’t think that
                            more than half the children are British. A large proportion are Greeks, some as old as
                            sixteen, and about the same number are Afrikaners. There are Poles and non-Nazi
                            Germans, Swiss and a few American children.

                            All instruction is through the medium of English and it is amazing how soon all the
                            foreign children learn to chatter in English. George has been told that we will return to
                            Mbeya after our leave and for that I am very thankful as it means that we will still be living
                            near at hand when Jim and Henry start school. Because many of these children have to
                            travel many hundreds of miles to come to school, – Mbeya is a two day journey from the
                            railhead, – the school year is divided into two instead of the usual three terms. This
                            means that many of these children do not see their parents for months at a time. I think
                            this is a very sad state of affairs especially for the seven and eight year olds but the
                            Matrons assure me , that many children who live on isolated farms and stations are quite
                            reluctant to go home because they miss the companionship and the games and
                            entertainment that the school offers.

                            My only complaint about the life here is that I see far too little of George. He is
                            kept extremely busy on this range and is hardly at home except for a few days at the
                            months end when he has to be at his office to check up on the pay vouchers and the
                            issue of ammunition to the Scouts. George’s Range takes in the whole of the Southern
                            Province and the Southern half of the Western Province and extends to the border with
                            Northern Rhodesia and right across to Lake Tanganyika. This vast area is patrolled by
                            only 40 Game Scouts because the Department is at present badly under staffed, due
                            partly to the still acute shortage of rifles, but even more so to the extraordinary reluctance
                            which the Government shows to allocate adequate funds for the efficient running of the
                            Department.

                            The Game Scouts must see that the Game Laws are enforced, protect native
                            crops from raiding elephant, hippo and other game animals. Report disease amongst game and deal with stock raiding lions. By constantly going on safari and checking on
                            their work, George makes sure the range is run to his satisfaction. Most of the Game
                            Scouts are fine fellows but, considering they receive only meagre pay for dangerous
                            and exacting work, it is not surprising that occasionally a Scout is tempted into accepting
                            a bribe not to report a serious infringement of the Game Laws and there is, of course,
                            always the temptation to sell ivory illicitly to unscrupulous Indian and Arab traders.
                            Apart from supervising the running of the Range, George has two major jobs.
                            One is to supervise the running of the Game Free Area along the Rhodesia –
                            Tanganyika border, and the other to hunt down the man-eating lions which for years have
                            terrorised the Njombe District killing hundreds of Africans. Yes I know ‘hundreds’ sounds
                            fantastic, but this is perfectly true and one day, when the job is done and the official
                            report published I shall send it to you to prove it!

                            I hate to think of the Game Free Area and so does George. All the game from
                            buffalo to tiny duiker has been shot out in a wide belt extending nearly two hundred
                            miles along the Northern Rhodesia -Tanganyika border. There are three Europeans in
                            widely spaced camps who supervise this slaughter by African Game Guards. This
                            horrible measure is considered necessary by the Veterinary Departments of
                            Tanganyika, Rhodesia and South Africa, to prevent the cattle disease of Rinderpest
                            from spreading South.

                            When George is home however, we do relax and have fun. On the Saturday
                            before the school term started we took Kate and the boys up to the top fishing camp in
                            the Mporoto Mountains for her first attempt at trout fishing. There are three of these
                            camps built by the Mbeya Trout Association on the rivers which were first stocked with
                            the trout hatched on our farm at Mchewe. Of the three, the top camp is our favourite. The
                            scenery there is most glorious and reminds me strongly of the rivers of the Western
                            Cape which I so loved in my childhood.

                            The river, the Kawira, flows from the Rungwe Mountain through a narrow valley
                            with hills rising steeply on either side. The water runs swiftly over smooth stones and
                            sometimes only a foot or two below the level of the banks. It is sparkling and shallow,
                            but in places the water is deep and dark and the banks high. I had a busy day keeping
                            an eye on the boys, especially Jim, who twice climbed out on branches which overhung
                            deep water. “Mummy, I was only looking for trout!”

                            How those kids enjoyed the freedom of the camp after the comparative
                            restrictions of town. So did Fanny, she raced about on the hills like a mad dog chasing
                            imaginary rabbits and having the time of her life. To escape the noise and commotion
                            George had gone far upstream to fish and returned in the late afternoon with three good
                            sized trout and four smaller ones. Kate proudly showed George the two she had caught
                            with the assistance or our cook Hamisi. I fear they were caught in a rather unorthodox
                            manner but this I kept a secret from George who is a stickler for the orthodox in trout
                            fishing.

                            Eleanor.

                            Jacksdale England 24th June 1946

                            Dearest Family.

                            Here we are all together at last in England. You cannot imagine how wonderful it
                            feels to have the whole Rushby family reunited. I find myself counting heads. Ann,
                            George, Kate, John, Jim, and Henry. All present and well. We had a very pleasant trip
                            on the old British India Ship Mantola. She was crowded with East Africans going home
                            for the first time since the war, many like us, eagerly looking forward to a reunion with their
                            children whom they had not seen for years. There was a great air of anticipation and
                            good humour but a little anxiety too.

                            “I do hope our children will be glad to see us,” said one, and went on to tell me
                            about a Doctor from Dar es Salaam who, after years of separation from his son had
                            recently gone to visit him at his school. The Doctor had alighted at the railway station
                            where he had arranged to meet his son. A tall youth approached him and said, very
                            politely, “Excuse me sir. Are you my Father?” Others told me of children who had
                            become so attached to their relatives in England that they gave their parents a very cool
                            reception. I began to feel apprehensive about Ann and George but fortunately had no
                            time to mope.

                            Oh, that washing and ironing for six! I shall remember for ever that steamy little
                            laundry in the heat of the Red Sea and queuing up for the ironing and the feeling of guilt
                            at the size of my bundle. We met many old friends amongst the passengers, and made
                            some new ones, so the voyage was a pleasant one, We did however have our
                            anxious moments.

                            John was the first to disappear and we had an anxious search for him. He was
                            quite surprised that we had been concerned. “I was just talking to my friend Chinky
                            Chinaman in his workshop.” Could John have called him that? Then, when I returned to
                            the cabin from dinner one night I found Henry swigging Owbridge’s Lung Tonic. He had
                            drunk half the bottle neat and the label said ‘five drops in water’. Luckily it did not harm
                            him.

                            Jim of course was forever risking his neck. George had forbidden him to climb on
                            the railings but he was forever doing things which no one had thought of forbidding him
                            to do, like hanging from the overhead pipes on the deck or standing on the sill of a
                            window and looking down at the well deck far below. An Officer found him doing this and
                            gave me the scolding.

                            Another day he climbed up on a derrick used for hoisting cargo. George,
                            oblivious to this was sitting on the hatch cover with other passengers reading a book. I
                            was in the wash house aft on the same deck when Kate rushed in and said, “Mummy
                            come and see Jim.” Before I had time to more than gape, the butcher noticed Jim and
                            rushed out knife in hand. “Get down from there”, he bellowed. Jim got, and with such
                            speed that he caught the leg or his shorts on a projecting piece of metal. The cotton
                            ripped across the seam from leg to leg and Jim stood there for a humiliating moment in a
                            sort of revealing little kilt enduring the smiles of the passengers who had looked up from
                            their books at the butcher’s shout.

                            That incident cured Jim of his urge to climb on the ship but he managed to give
                            us one more fright. He was lost off Dover. People from whom we enquired said, “Yes
                            we saw your little boy. He was by the railings watching that big aircraft carrier.” Now Jim,
                            though mischievous , is very obedient. It was not until George and I had conducted an
                            exhaustive search above and below decks that I really became anxious. Could he have
                            fallen overboard? Jim was returned to us by an unamused Officer. He had been found
                            in one of the lifeboats on the deck forbidden to children.

                            Our ship passed Dover after dark and it was an unforgettable sight. Dover Castle
                            and the cliffs were floodlit for the Victory Celebrations. One of the men passengers sat
                            down at the piano and played ‘The White Cliffs of Dover’, and people sang and a few
                            wept. The Mantola docked at Tilbury early next morning in a steady drizzle.
                            There was a dockers strike on and it took literally hours for all the luggage to be
                            put ashore. The ships stewards simply locked the public rooms and went off leaving the
                            passengers shivering on the docks. Eventually damp and bedraggled, we arrived at St
                            Pancras Station and were given a warm welcome by George’s sister Cath and her
                            husband Reg Pears, who had come all the way from Nottingham to meet us.
                            As we had to spend an hour in London before our train left for Nottingham,
                            George suggested that Cath and I should take the children somewhere for a meal. So
                            off we set in the cold drizzle, the boys and I without coats and laden with sundry
                            packages, including a hand woven native basket full of shoes. We must have looked like
                            a bunch of refugees as we stood in the hall of The Kings Cross Station Hotel because a
                            supercilious waiter in tails looked us up and down and said, “I’m afraid not Madam”, in
                            answer to my enquiry whether the hotel could provide lunch for six.
                            Anyway who cares! We had lunch instead at an ABC tea room — horrible
                            sausage and a mound or rather sloppy mashed potatoes, but very good ice-cream.
                            After the train journey in a very grimy third class coach, through an incredibly green and
                            beautiful countryside, we eventually reached Nottingham and took a bus to Jacksdale,
                            where George’s mother and sisters live in large detached houses side by side.
                            Ann and George were at the bus stop waiting for us, and thank God, submitted
                            to my kiss as though we had been parted for weeks instead of eight years. Even now
                            that we are together again my heart aches to think of all those missed years. They have
                            not changed much and I would have picked them out of a crowd, but Ann, once thin and
                            pale, is now very rosy and blooming. She still has her pretty soft plaits and her eyes are
                            still a clear calm blue. Young George is very striking looking with sparkling brown eyes, a
                            ready, slightly lopsided smile, and charming manners.

                            Mother, and George’s elder sister, Lottie Giles, welcomed us at the door with the
                            cheering news that our tea was ready. Ann showed us the way to mother’s lovely lilac
                            tiled bathroom for a wash before tea. Before I had even turned the tap, Jim had hung
                            form the glass towel rail and it lay in three pieces on the floor. There have since been
                            similar tragedies. I can see that life in civilisation is not without snags.

                            I am most grateful that Ann and George have accepted us so naturally and
                            affectionately. Ann said candidly, “Mummy, it’s a good thing that you had Aunt Cath with
                            you when you arrived because, honestly, I wouldn’t have known you.”

                            Eleanor.

                            Jacksdale England 28th August 1946

                            Dearest Family.

                            I am sorry that I have not written for some time but honestly, I don’t know whether
                            I’m coming or going. Mother handed the top floor of her house to us and the
                            arrangement was that I should tidy our rooms and do our laundry and Mother would
                            prepare the meals except for breakfast. It looked easy at first. All the rooms have wall to
                            wall carpeting and there was a large vacuum cleaner in the box room. I was told a
                            window cleaner would do the windows.

                            Well the first time I used the Hoover I nearly died of fright. I pressed the switch
                            and immediately there was a roar and the bag filled with air to bursting point, or so I
                            thought. I screamed for Ann and she came at the run. I pointed to the bag and shouted
                            above the din, “What must I do? It’s going to burst!” Ann looked at me in astonishment
                            and said, “But Mummy that’s the way it works.” I couldn’t have her thinking me a
                            complete fool so I switched the current off and explained to Ann how it was that I had
                            never seen this type of equipment in action. How, in Tanganyika , I had never had a
                            house with electricity and that, anyway, electric equipment would be superfluous
                            because floors are of cement which the houseboy polishes by hand, one only has a
                            few rugs or grass mats on the floor. “But what about Granny’s house in South Africa?’”
                            she asked, so I explained about your Josephine who threatened to leave if you
                            bought a Hoover because that would mean that you did not think she kept the house
                            clean. The sad fact remains that, at fourteen, Ann knows far more about housework than I
                            do, or rather did! I’m learning fast.

                            The older children all go to school at different times in the morning. Ann leaves first
                            by bus to go to her Grammar School at Sutton-in-Ashfield. Shortly afterwards George
                            catches a bus for Nottingham where he attends the High School. So they have
                            breakfast in relays, usually scrambled egg made from a revolting dried egg mixture.
                            Then there are beds to make and washing and ironing to do, so I have little time for
                            sightseeing, though on a few afternoons George has looked after the younger children
                            and I have gone on bus tours in Derbyshire. Life is difficult here with all the restrictions on
                            foodstuffs. We all have ration books so get our fair share but meat, fats and eggs are
                            scarce and expensive. The weather is very wet. At first I used to hang out the washing
                            and then rush to bring it in when a shower came. Now I just let it hang.

                            We have left our imprint upon my Mother-in-law’s house for ever. Henry upset a
                            bottle of Milk of Magnesia in the middle of the pale fawn bedroom carpet. John, trying to
                            be helpful and doing some dusting, broke one of the delicate Dresden china candlesticks
                            which adorn our bedroom mantelpiece.Jim and Henry have wrecked the once
                            professionally landscaped garden and all the boys together bored a large hole through
                            Mother’s prized cherry tree. So now Mother has given up and gone off to Bournemouth
                            for a much needed holiday. Once a week I have the capable help of a cleaning woman,
                            called for some reason, ‘Mrs Two’, but I have now got all the cooking to do for eight. Mrs
                            Two is a godsend. She wears, of all things, a print mob cap with a hole in it. Says it
                            belonged to her Grandmother. Her price is far beyond Rubies to me, not so much
                            because she does, in a couple of hours, what it takes me all day to do, but because she
                            sells me boxes of fifty cigarettes. Some non-smoking relative, who works in Players
                            tobacco factory, passes on his ration to her. Until Mrs Two came to my rescue I had
                            been starved of cigarettes. Each time I asked for them at the shop the grocer would say,
                            “Are you registered with us?” Only very rarely would some kindly soul sell me a little
                            packet of five Woodbines.

                            England is very beautiful but the sooner we go home to Tanganyika, the better.
                            On this, George and I and the children agree.

                            Eleanor.

                            Jacksdale England 20th September 1946

                            Dearest Family.

                            Our return passages have now been booked on the Winchester Castle and we
                            sail from Southampton on October the sixth. I look forward to returning to Tanganyika but
                            hope to visit England again in a few years time when our children are older and when
                            rationing is a thing of the past.

                            I have grown fond of my Sisters-in-law and admire my Mother-in-law very much.
                            She has a great sense of humour and has entertained me with stories of her very
                            eventful life, and told me lots of little stories of the children which did not figure in her
                            letters. One which amused me was about young George. During one of the air raids
                            early in the war when the sirens were screaming and bombers roaring overhead Mother
                            made the two children get into the cloak cupboard under the stairs. Young George
                            seemed quite unconcerned about the planes and the bombs but soon an anxious voice
                            asked in the dark, “Gran, what will I do if a spider falls on me?” I am afraid that Mother is
                            going to miss Ann and George very much.

                            I had a holiday last weekend when Lottie and I went up to London on a spree. It
                            was a most enjoyable weekend, though very rushed. We placed ourselves in the
                            hands of Thos. Cook and Sons and saw most of the sights of London and were run off
                            our feet in the process. As you all know London I shall not describe what I saw but just
                            to say that, best of all, I enjoyed walking along the Thames embankment in the evening
                            and the changing of the Guard at Whitehall. On Sunday morning Lottie and I went to
                            Kew Gardens and in the afternoon walked in Kensington Gardens.

                            We went to only one show, ‘The Skin of our Teeth’ starring Vivienne Leigh.
                            Neither of us enjoyed the performance at all and regretted having spent so much on
                            circle seats. The show was far too highbrow for my taste, a sort of satire on the survival
                            of the human race. Miss Leigh was unrecognisable in a blond wig and her voice strident.
                            However the night was not a dead loss as far as entertainment was concerned as we
                            were later caught up in a tragicomedy at our hotel.

                            We had booked communicating rooms at the enormous Imperial Hotel in Russell
                            Square. These rooms were comfortably furnished but very high up, and we had a rather
                            terrifying and dreary view from the windows of the enclosed courtyard far below. We
                            had some snacks and a chat in Lottie’s room and then I moved to mine and went to bed.
                            I had noted earlier that there was a special lock on the outer door of my room so that
                            when the door was closed from the inside it automatically locked itself.
                            I was just dropping off to sleep when I heard a hammering which seemed to
                            come from my wardrobe. I got up, rather fearfully, and opened the wardrobe door and
                            noted for the first time that the wardrobe was set in an opening in the wall and that the
                            back of the wardrobe also served as the back of the wardrobe in the room next door. I
                            quickly shut it again and went to confer with Lottie.

                            Suddenly a male voice was raised next door in supplication, “Mary Mother of
                            God, Help me! They’ve locked me in!” and the hammering resumed again, sometimes
                            on the door, and then again on the back of the wardrobe of the room next door. Lottie
                            had by this time joined me and together we listened to the prayers and to the
                            hammering. Then the voice began to threaten, “If you don’t let me out I’ll jump out of the
                            window.” Great consternation on our side of the wall. I went out into the passage and
                            called through the door, “You’re not locked in. Come to your door and I’ll tell you how to
                            open it.” Silence for a moment and then again the prayers followed by a threat. All the
                            other doors in the corridor remained shut.

                            Luckily just then a young man and a woman came walking down the corridor and I
                            explained the situation. The young man hurried off for the night porter who went into the
                            next door room. In a matter of minutes there was peace next door. When the night
                            porter came out into the corridor again I asked for an explanation. He said quite casually,
                            “It’s all right Madam. He’s an Irish Gentleman in Show Business. He gets like this on a
                            Saturday night when he has had a drop too much. He won’t give any more trouble
                            now.” And he didn’t. Next morning at breakfast Lottie and I tried to spot the gentleman in
                            the Show Business, but saw no one who looked like the owner of that charming Irish
                            voice.

                            George had to go to London on business last Monday and took the older
                            children with him for a few hours of sight seeing. They returned quite unimpressed.
                            Everything was too old and dirty and there were far too many people about, but they
                            had enjoyed riding on the escalators at the tube stations, and all agreed that the highlight
                            of the trip was, “Dad took us to lunch at the Chicken Inn.”

                            Now that it is almost time to leave England I am finding the housework less of a
                            drudgery, Also, as it is school holiday time, Jim and Henry are able to go on walks with
                            the older children and so use up some of their surplus energy. Cath and I took the
                            children (except young George who went rabbit shooting with his uncle Reg, and
                            Henry, who stayed at home with his dad) to the Wakes at Selston, the neighbouring
                            village. There were the roundabouts and similar contraptions but the side shows had
                            more appeal for the children. Ann and Kate found a stall where assorted prizes were
                            spread out on a sloping table. Anyone who could land a penny squarely on one of
                            these objects was given a similar one as a prize.

                            I was touched to see that both girls ignored all the targets except a box of fifty
                            cigarettes which they were determined to win for me. After numerous attempts, Kate
                            landed her penny successfully and you would have loved to have seen her radiant little
                            face.

                            Eleanor.

                            Dar es Salaam 22nd October 1946

                            Dearest Family.

                            Back in Tanganyika at last, but not together. We have to stay in Dar es Salaam
                            until tomorrow when the train leaves for Dodoma. We arrived yesterday morning to find
                            all the hotels filled with people waiting to board ships for England. Fortunately some
                            friends came to the rescue and Ann, Kate and John have gone to stay with them. Jim,
                            Henry and I are sleeping in a screened corner of the lounge of the New Africa Hotel, and
                            George and young George have beds in the Palm Court of the same hotel.

                            We travelled out from England in the Winchester Castle under troopship
                            conditions. We joined her at Southampton after a rather slow train journey from
                            Nottingham. We arrived after dark and from the station we could see a large ship in the
                            docks with a floodlit red funnel. “Our ship,” yelled the children in delight, but it was not the
                            Winchester Castle but the Queen Elizabeth, newly reconditioned.

                            We had hoped to board our ship that evening but George made enquiries and
                            found that we would not be allowed on board until noon next day. Without much hope,
                            we went off to try to get accommodation for eight at a small hotel recommended by the
                            taxi driver. Luckily for us there was a very motherly woman at the reception desk. She
                            looked in amusement at the six children and said to me, “Goodness are all these yours,
                            ducks? Then she called over her shoulder, “Wilf, come and see this lady with lots of
                            children. We must try to help.” They settled the problem most satisfactorily by turning
                            two rooms into a dormitory.

                            In the morning we had time to inspect bomb damage in the dock area of
                            Southampton. Most of the rubble had been cleared away but there are still numbers of
                            damaged buildings awaiting demolition. A depressing sight. We saw the Queen Mary
                            at anchor, still in her drab war time paint, but magnificent nevertheless.
                            The Winchester Castle was crammed with passengers and many travelled in
                            acute discomfort. We were luckier than most because the two girls, the three small boys
                            and I had a stateroom to ourselves and though it was stripped of peacetime comforts,
                            we had a private bathroom and toilet. The two Georges had bunks in a huge men-only
                            dormitory somewhere in the bowls of the ship where they had to share communal troop
                            ship facilities. The food was plentiful but unexciting and one had to queue for afternoon
                            tea. During the day the decks were crowded and there was squatting room only. The
                            many children on board got bored.

                            Port Said provided a break and we were all entertained by the ‘Gully Gully’ man
                            and his conjuring tricks, and though we had no money to spend at Simon Artz, we did at
                            least have a chance to stretch our legs. Next day scores of passengers took ill with
                            sever stomach upsets, whether from food poisoning, or as was rumoured, from bad
                            water taken on at the Egyptian port, I don’t know. Only the two Georges in our family
                            were affected and their attacks were comparatively mild.

                            As we neared the Kenya port of Mombassa, the passengers for Dar es Salaam
                            were told that they would have to disembark at Mombassa and continue their journey in
                            a small coaster, the Al Said. The Winchester Castle is too big for the narrow channel
                            which leads to Dar es Salaam harbour.

                            From the wharf the Al Said looked beautiful. She was once the private yacht of
                            the Sultan of Zanzibar and has lovely lines. Our admiration lasted only until we were
                            shown our cabins. With one voice our children exclaimed, “Gosh they stink!” They did, of
                            a mixture of rancid oil and sweat and stale urine. The beds were not yet made and the
                            thin mattresses had ominous stains on them. John, ever fastidious, lifted his mattress and two enormous cockroaches scuttled for cover.

                            We had a good homely lunch served by two smiling African stewards and
                            afterwards we sat on deck and that was fine too, though behind ones enjoyment there
                            was the thought of those stuffy and dirty cabins. That first night nearly everyone,
                            including George and our older children, slept on deck. Women occupied deck chairs
                            and men and children slept on the bare decks. Horrifying though the idea was, I decided
                            that, as Jim had a bad cough, he, Henry and I would sleep in our cabin.

                            When I announced my intention of sleeping in the cabin one of the passengers
                            gave me some insecticide spray which I used lavishly, but without avail. The children
                            slept but I sat up all night with the light on, determined to keep at least their pillows clear
                            of the cockroaches which scurried about boldly regardless of the light. All the next day
                            and night we avoided the cabins. The Al Said stopped for some hours at Zanzibar to
                            offload her deck cargo of live cattle and packing cases from the hold. George and the
                            elder children went ashore for a walk but I felt too lazy and there was plenty to watch
                            from deck.

                            That night I too occupied a deck chair and slept quite comfortably, and next
                            morning we entered the palm fringed harbour of Dar es Salaam and were home.

                            Eleanor.

                            Mbeya 1st November 1946

                            Dearest Family.

                            Home at last! We are all most happily installed in a real family house about three
                            miles out of Mbeya and near the school. This house belongs to an elderly German and
                            has been taken over by the Custodian of Enemy Property and leased to the
                            Government.

                            The owner, whose name is Shenkel, was not interned but is allowed to occupy a
                            smaller house on the Estate. I found him in the garden this morning lecturing the children
                            on what they may do and may not do. I tried to make it quite clear to him that he was not
                            our landlord, though he clearly thinks otherwise. After he had gone I had to take two
                            aspirin and lie down to recover my composure! I had been warned that he has this effect
                            on people.

                            Mr Shenkel is a short and ugly man, his clothes are stained with food and he
                            wears steel rimmed glasses tied round his head with a piece of dirty elastic because
                            one earpiece is missing. He speaks with a thick German accent but his English is fluent
                            and I believe he is a cultured and clever man. But he is maddening. The children were
                            more amused than impressed by his exhortations and have happily Christened our
                            home, ‘Old Shenks’.

                            The house has very large grounds as the place is really a derelict farm. It suits us
                            down to the ground. We had no sooner unpacked than George went off on safari after
                            those maneating lions in the Njombe District. he accounted for one, and a further two
                            jointly with a Game Scout, before we left for England. But none was shot during the five
                            months we were away as George’s relief is quite inexperienced in such work. George
                            thinks that there are still about a dozen maneaters at large. His theory is that a female
                            maneater moved into the area in 1938 when maneating first started, and brought up her
                            cubs to be maneaters, and those cubs in turn did the same. The three maneating lions
                            that have been shot were all in very good condition and not old and maimed as
                            maneaters usually are.

                            George anticipates that it will be months before all these lions are accounted for
                            because they are constantly on the move and cover a very large area. The lions have to
                            be hunted on foot because they range over broken country covered by bush and fairly
                            dense thicket.

                            I did a bit of shooting myself yesterday and impressed our African servants and
                            the children and myself. What a fluke! Our houseboy came to say that there was a snake
                            in the garden, the biggest he had ever seen. He said it was too big to kill with a stick and
                            would I shoot it. I had no gun but a heavy .450 Webley revolver and I took this and
                            hurried out with the children at my heels.

                            The snake turned out to be an unusually large puff adder which had just shed its
                            skin. It looked beautiful in a repulsive way. So flanked by servants and children I took
                            aim and shot, not hitting the head as I had planned, but breaking the snake’s back with
                            the heavy bullet. The two native boys then rushed up with sticks and flattened the head.
                            “Ma you’re a crack shot,” cried the kids in delighted surprise. I hope to rest on my laurels
                            for a long, long while.

                            Although there are only a few weeks of school term left the four older children will
                            start school on Monday. Not only am I pleased with our new home here but also with
                            the staff I have engaged. Our new houseboy, Reuben, (but renamed Robin by our
                            children) is not only cheerful and willing but intelligent too, and Jumbe, the wood and
                            garden boy, is a born clown and a source of great entertainment to the children.

                            I feel sure that we are all going to be very happy here at ‘Old Shenks!.

                            Eleanor.

                            #6267
                            TracyTracy
                            Participant

                              From Tanganyika with Love

                              continued part 8

                              With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                              Morogoro 20th January 1941

                              Dearest Family,

                              It is all arranged for us to go on three months leave to Cape Town next month so
                              get out your flags. How I shall love showing off Kate and John to you and this time
                              George will be with us and you’ll be able to get to know him properly. You can’t think
                              what a comfort it will be to leave all the worries of baggage and tipping to him. We will all
                              be travelling by ship to Durban and from there to Cape Town by train. I rather dread the
                              journey because there is a fifth little Rushby on the way and, as always, I am very
                              queasy.

                              Kate has become such a little companion to me that I dread the thought of leaving
                              her behind with you to start schooling. I miss Ann and George so much now and must
                              face separation from Kate as well. There does not seem to be any alternative though.
                              There is a boarding school in Arusha and another has recently been started in Mbeya,
                              but both places are so far away and I know she would be very unhappy as a boarder at
                              this stage. Living happily with you and attending a day school might wean her of her
                              dependance upon me. As soon as this wretched war ends we mean to get Ann and
                              George back home and Kate too and they can then all go to boarding school together.
                              If I were a more methodical person I would try to teach Kate myself, but being a
                              muddler I will have my hands full with Johnny and the new baby. Life passes pleasantly
                              but quietly here. Much of my time is taken up with entertaining the children and sewing
                              for them and just waiting for George to come home.

                              George works so hard on these safaris and this endless elephant hunting to
                              protect native crops entails so much foot safari, that he has lost a good deal of weight. it
                              is more than ten years since he had a holiday so he is greatly looking forward to this one.
                              Four whole months together!

                              I should like to keep the ayah, Janet, for the new baby, but she says she wants
                              to return to her home in the Southern Highlands Province and take a job there. She is
                              unusually efficient and so clean, and the houseboy and cook are quite scared of her. She
                              bawls at them if the children’s meals are served a few minutes late but she is always
                              respectful towards me and practically creeps around on tiptoe when George is home.
                              She has a room next to the outside kitchen. One night thieves broke into the kitchen and
                              stole a few things, also a canvas chair and mat from the verandah. Ayah heard them, and
                              grabbing a bit of firewood, she gave chase. Her shouts so alarmed the thieves that they
                              ran off up the hill jettisoning their loot as they ran. She is a great character.

                              Eleanor.

                              Morogoro 30th July 1941

                              Dearest Family,

                              Safely back in Morogoro after a rather grim voyage from Durban. Our ship was
                              completely blacked out at night and we had to sleep with warm clothing and life belts
                              handy and had so many tedious boat drills. It was a nuisance being held up for a whole
                              month in Durban, because I was so very pregnant when we did embark. In fact George
                              suggested that I had better hide in the ‘Ladies’ until the ship sailed for fear the Captain
                              might refuse to take me. It seems that the ship, on which we were originally booked to
                              travel, was torpedoed somewhere off the Cape.

                              We have been given a very large house this tour with a mosquito netted
                              sleeping porch which will be fine for the new baby. The only disadvantage is that the
                              house is on the very edge of the residential part of Morogoro and Johnny will have to
                              go quite a distance to find playmates.

                              I still miss Kate terribly. She is a loving little person. I had prepared for a scene
                              when we said good-bye but I never expected that she would be the comforter. It
                              nearly broke my heart when she put her arms around me and said, “I’m so sorry
                              Mummy, please don’t cry. I’ll be good. Please don’t cry.” I’m afraid it was all very
                              harrowing for you also. It is a great comfort to hear that she has settled down so happily.
                              I try not to think consciously of my absent children and remind myself that there are
                              thousands of mothers in the same boat, but they are always there at the back of my
                              mind.

                              Mother writes that Ann and George are perfectly happy and well, and that though
                              German bombers do fly over fairly frequently, they are unlikely to drop their bombs on
                              a small place like Jacksdale.

                              George has already left on safari to the Rufiji. There was no replacement for his
                              job while he was away so he is anxious to get things moving again. Johnny and I are
                              going to move in with friends until he returns, just in case all the travelling around brings
                              the new baby on earlier than expected.

                              Eleanor.

                              Morogoro 26th August 1941

                              Dearest Family,

                              Our new son, James Caleb. was born at 3.30 pm yesterday afternoon, with a
                              minimum of fuss, in the hospital here. The Doctor was out so my friend, Sister Murray,
                              delivered the baby. The Sister is a Scots girl, very efficient and calm and encouraging,
                              and an ideal person to have around at such a time.

                              Everything, this time, went without a hitch and I feel fine and proud of my
                              bouncing son. He weighs nine pounds and ten ounces and is a big boned fellow with
                              dark hair and unusually strongly marked eyebrows. His eyes are strong too and already
                              seem to focus. George is delighted with him and brought Hugh Nelson to see him this
                              morning. Hugh took one look, and, astonished I suppose by the baby’s apparent
                              awareness, said, “Gosh, this one has been here before.” The baby’s cot is beside my
                              bed so I can admire him as much as I please. He has large strong hands and George
                              reckons he’ll make a good boxer some day.

                              Another of my early visitors was Mabemba, George’s orderly. He is a very big
                              African and looks impressive in his Game Scouts uniform. George met him years ago at
                              Mahenge when he was a young elephant hunter and Mabemba was an Askari in the
                              Police. Mabemba takes quite a proprietary interest in the family.

                              Eleanor.

                              Morogoro 25th December 1941

                              Dearest Family,

                              Christmas Day today, but not a gay one. I have Johnny in bed with a poisoned
                              leg so he missed the children’s party at the Club. To make things a little festive I have
                              put up a little Christmas tree in the children’s room and have hung up streamers and
                              balloons above the beds. Johnny demands a lot of attention so it is fortunate that little
                              James is such a very good baby. He sleeps all night until 6 am when his feed is due.
                              One morning last week I got up as usual to feed him but I felt so dopey that I
                              thought I’d better have a cold wash first. I went into the bathroom and had a hurried
                              splash and then grabbed a towel to dry my face. Immediately I felt an agonising pain in
                              my nose. Reason? There was a scorpion in the towel! In no time at all my nose looked
                              like a pear and felt burning hot. The baby screamed with frustration whilst I feverishly
                              bathed my nose and applied this and that in an effort to cool it.

                              For three days my nose was very red and tender,”A real boozer nose”, said
                              George. But now, thank goodness, it is back to normal.

                              Some of the younger marrieds and a couple of bachelors came around,
                              complete with portable harmonium, to sing carols in the early hours. No sooner had we
                              settled down again to woo sleep when we were disturbed by shouts and screams from
                              our nearest neighbour’s house. “Just celebrating Christmas”, grunted George, but we
                              heard this morning that the neighbour had fallen down his verandah steps and broken his
                              leg.

                              Eleanor.

                              Morogoro Hospital 30th September 1943

                              Dearest Family,

                              Well now we are eight! Our new son, Henry, was born on the night of the 28th.
                              He is a beautiful baby, weighing ten pounds three and a half ounces. This baby is very
                              well developed, handsome, and rather superior looking, and not at all amusing to look at
                              as the other boys were.George was born with a moustache, John had a large nose and
                              looked like a little old man, and Jim, bless his heart, looked rather like a baby
                              chimpanzee. Henry is different. One of my visitors said, “Heaven he’ll have to be a
                              Bishop!” I expect the lawn sleeves of his nightie really gave her that idea, but the baby
                              does look like ‘Someone’. He is very good and George, John, and Jim are delighted
                              with him, so is Mabemba.

                              We have a dear little nurse looking after us. She is very petite and childish
                              looking. When the baby was born and she brought him for me to see, the nurse asked
                              his name. I said jokingly, “His name is Benjamin – the last of the family.” She is now very
                              peeved to discover that his real name is Henry William and persists in calling him
                              ‘Benjie’.I am longing to get home and into my pleasant rut. I have been away for two
                              whole weeks and George is managing so well that I shall feel quite expendable if I don’t
                              get home soon. As our home is a couple of miles from the hospital, I arranged to move
                              in and stay with the nursing sister on the day the baby was due. There I remained for ten
                              whole days before the baby was born. Each afternoon George came and took me for a
                              ride in the bumpy Bedford lorry and the Doctor tried this and that but the baby refused
                              to be hurried.

                              On the tenth day I had the offer of a lift and decided to go home for tea and
                              surprise George. It was a surprise too, because George was entertaining a young
                              Game Ranger for tea and my arrival, looking like a perambulating big top, must have
                              been rather embarrassing.Henry was born at the exact moment that celebrations started
                              in the Township for the end of the Muslim religious festival of Ramadan. As the Doctor
                              held him up by his ankles, there was the sound of hooters and firecrackers from the town.
                              The baby has a birthmark in the shape of a crescent moon above his left eyebrow.

                              Eleanor.

                              Morogoro 26th January 1944

                              Dearest Family,

                              We have just heard that we are to be transferred to the Headquarters of the
                              Game Department at a place called Lyamungu in the Northern Province. George is not
                              at all pleased because he feels that the new job will entail a good deal of office work and
                              that his beloved but endless elephant hunting will be considerably curtailed. I am glad of
                              that and I am looking forward to seeing a new part of Tanganyika and particularly
                              Kilimanjaro which dominates Lyamungu.

                              Thank goodness our menagerie is now much smaller. We found a home for the
                              guinea pigs last December and Susie, our mischievous guinea-fowl, has flown off to find
                              a mate.Last week I went down to Dar es Salaam for a check up by Doctor John, a
                              woman doctor, leaving George to cope with the three boys. I was away two nights and
                              a day and returned early in the morning just as George was giving Henry his six o’clock
                              bottle. It always amazes me that so very masculine a man can do my chores with no
                              effort and I have a horrible suspicion that he does them better than I do. I enjoyed the
                              short break at the coast very much. I stayed with friends and we bathed in the warm sea
                              and saw a good film.

                              Now I suppose there will be a round of farewell parties. People in this country
                              are most kind and hospitable.

                              Eleanor.

                              Lyamungu 20th March 1944

                              Dearest Family,

                              We left Morogoro after the round of farewell parties I had anticipated. The final
                              one was at the Club on Saturday night. George made a most amusing speech and the
                              party was a very pleasant occasion though I was rather tired after all the packing.
                              Several friends gathered to wave us off on Monday morning. We had two lorries
                              loaded with our goods. I rode in the cab of the first one with Henry on my knee. George
                              with John and Jim rode in the second one. As there was no room for them in the cab,
                              they sat on our couch which was placed across the width of the lorry behind the cab. This
                              seat was not as comfortable as it sounds, because the space behind the couch was
                              taken up with packing cases which were not lashed in place and these kept moving
                              forward as the lorry bumped its way over the bad road.

                              Soon there was hardly any leg room and George had constantly to stand up and
                              push the second layer of packing cases back to prevent them from toppling over onto
                              the children and himself. As it is now the rainy season the road was very muddy and
                              treacherous and the lorries travelled so slowly it was dark by the time we reached
                              Karogwe from where we were booked to take the train next morning to Moshi.
                              Next morning we heard that there had been a washaway on the line and that the
                              train would be delayed for at least twelve hours. I was not feeling well and certainly did
                              not enjoy my day. Early in the afternoon Jimmy ran into a wall and blackened both his
                              eyes. What a child! As the day wore on I felt worse and worse and when at last the train
                              did arrive I simply crawled into my bunk whilst George coped nobly with the luggage
                              and the children.

                              We arrived at Moshi at breakfast time and went straight to the Lion Cub Hotel
                              where I took to my bed with a high temperature. It was, of course, malaria. I always have
                              my attacks at the most inopportune times. Fortunately George ran into some friends
                              called Eccles and the wife Mollie came to my room and bathed Henry and prepared his
                              bottle and fed him. George looked after John and Jim. Next day I felt much better and
                              we drove out to Lyamungu the day after. There we had tea with the Game Warden and
                              his wife before moving into our new home nearby.

                              The Game Warden is Captain Monty Moore VC. He came out to Africa
                              originally as an Officer in the King’s African Rifles and liked the country so much he left the
                              Army and joined the Game Department. He was stationed at Banagi in the Serengetti
                              Game Reserve and is well known for his work with the lions there. He particularly tamed
                              some of the lions by feeding them so that they would come out into the open and could
                              readily be photographed by tourists. His wife Audrey, has written a book about their
                              experiences at Banagi. It is called “Serengetti”

                              Our cook, Hamisi, soon had a meal ready for us and we all went to bed early.
                              This is a very pleasant house and I know we will be happy here. I still feel a little shaky
                              but that is the result of all the quinine I have taken. I expect I shall feel fine in a day or two.

                              Eleanor.

                              Lyamungu 15th May 1944

                              Dearest Family,

                              Well, here we are settled comfortably in our very nice house. The house is
                              modern and roomy, and there is a large enclosed verandah, which will be a Godsend in
                              the wet weather as a playroom for the children. The only drawback is that there are so
                              many windows to be curtained and cleaned. The grounds consist of a very large lawn
                              and a few beds of roses and shrubs. It is an ideal garden for children, unlike our steeply
                              terraced garden at Morogoro.

                              Lyamungu is really the Government Coffee Research Station. It is about sixteen
                              miles from the town of Moshi which is the centre of the Tanganyika coffee growing
                              industry. Lyamungu, which means ‘place of God’ is in the foothills of Mt Kilimanjaro and
                              we have a beautiful view of Kilimanjaro. Kibo, the more spectacular of the two mountain
                              peaks, towers above us, looking from this angle, like a giant frosted plum pudding. Often the mountain is veiled by cloud and mist which sometimes comes down to
                              our level so that visibility is practically nil. George dislikes both mist and mountain but I
                              like both and so does John. He in fact saw Kibo before I did. On our first day here, the
                              peak was completely hidden by cloud. In the late afternoon when the children were
                              playing on the lawn outside I was indoors hanging curtains. I heard John call out, “Oh
                              Mummy, isn’t it beautiful!” I ran outside and there, above a scarf of cloud, I saw the
                              showy dome of Kibo with the setting sun shining on it tingeing the snow pink. It was an
                              unforgettable experience.

                              As this is the rainy season, the surrounding country side is very lush and green.
                              Everywhere one sees the rich green of the coffee plantations and the lighter green of
                              the banana groves. Unfortunately our walks are rather circumscribed. Except for the main road to Moshi, there is nowhere to walk except through the Government coffee
                              plantation. Paddy, our dog, thinks life is pretty boring as there is no bush here and
                              nothing to hunt. There are only half a dozen European families here and half of those are
                              on very distant terms with the other half which makes the station a rather uncomfortable
                              one.

                              The coffee expert who runs this station is annoyed because his European staff
                              has been cut down owing to the war, and three of the vacant houses and some office
                              buildings have been taken over temporarily by the Game Department. Another house
                              has been taken over by the head of the Labour Department. However I don’t suppose
                              the ill feeling will effect us much. We are so used to living in the bush that we are not
                              socially inclined any way.

                              Our cook, Hamisi, came with us from Morogoro but I had to engage a new
                              houseboy and kitchenboy. I first engaged a houseboy who produced a wonderful ‘chit’
                              in which his previous employer describes him as his “friend and confidant”. I felt rather
                              dubious about engaging him and how right I was. On his second day with us I produced
                              some of Henry’s napkins, previously rinsed by me, and asked this boy to wash them.
                              He looked most offended and told me that it was beneath his dignity to do women’s
                              work. We parted immediately with mutual relief.

                              Now I have a good natured fellow named Japhet who, though hard on crockery,
                              is prepared to do anything and loves playing with the children. He is a local boy, a
                              member of the Chagga tribe. These Chagga are most intelligent and, on the whole, well
                              to do as they all have their own small coffee shambas. Japhet tells me that his son is at
                              the Uganda University College studying medicine.The kitchen boy is a tall youth called
                              Tovelo, who helps both Hamisi, the cook, and the houseboy and also keeps an eye on
                              Henry when I am sewing. I still make all the children’s clothes and my own. Life is
                              pleasant but dull. George promises that he will take the whole family on safari when
                              Henry is a little older.

                              Eleanor.

                              Lyamungu 18th July 1944

                              Dearest Family,

                              Life drifts quietly by at Lyamungu with each day much like the one before – or
                              they would be, except that the children provide the sort of excitement that prohibits
                              boredom. Of the three boys our Jim is the best at this. Last week Jim wandered into the
                              coffee plantation beside our house and chewed some newly spayed berries. Result?
                              A high temperature and nasty, bloody diarrhoea, so we had to rush him to the hospital at
                              Moshi for treatment. however he was well again next day and George went off on safari.
                              That night there was another crisis. As the nights are now very cold, at this high
                              altitude, we have a large fire lit in the living room and the boy leaves a pile of logs
                              beside the hearth so that I can replenish the fire when necessary. Well that night I took
                              Henry off to bed, leaving John and Jim playing in the living room. When their bedtime
                              came, I called them without leaving the bedroom. When I had tucked John and Jim into
                              bed, I sat reading a bedtime story as I always do. Suddenly I saw smoke drifting
                              through the door, and heard a frightening rumbling noise. Japhet rushed in to say that the
                              lounge chimney was on fire! Picture me, panic on the inside and sweet smile on the
                              outside, as I picked Henry up and said to the other two, “There’s nothing to be
                              frightened about chaps, but get up and come outside for a bit.” Stupid of me to be so
                              heroic because John and Jim were not at all scared but only too delighted at the chance
                              of rushing about outside in the dark. The fire to them was just a bit of extra fun.

                              We hurried out to find one boy already on the roof and the other passing up a
                              brimming bucket of water. Other boys appeared from nowhere and soon cascades of
                              water were pouring down the chimney. The result was a mountain of smouldering soot
                              on the hearth and a pool of black water on the living room floor. However the fire was out
                              and no serious harm done because all the floors here are cement and another stain on
                              the old rug will hardly be noticed. As the children reluctantly returned to bed John
                              remarked smugly, “I told Jim not to put all the wood on the fire at once but he wouldn’t
                              listen.” I might have guessed!

                              However it was not Jim but John who gave me the worst turn of all this week. As
                              a treat I decided to take the boys to the river for a picnic tea. The river is not far from our
                              house but we had never been there before so I took the kitchen boy, Tovelo, to show
                              us the way. The path is on the level until one is in sight of the river when the bank slopes
                              steeply down. I decided that it was too steep for the pram so I stopped to lift Henry out
                              and carry him. When I looked around I saw John running down the slope towards the
                              river. The stream is not wide but flows swiftly and I had no idea how deep it was. All I
                              knew was that it was a trout stream. I called for John, “Stop, wait for me!” but he ran on
                              and made for a rude pole bridge which spanned the river. He started to cross and then,
                              to my horror, I saw John slip. There was a splash and he disappeared under the water. I
                              just dumped the baby on the ground, screamed to the boy to mind him and ran madly
                              down the slope to the river. Suddenly I saw John’s tight fitting felt hat emerge, then his
                              eyes and nose. I dashed into the water and found, to my intense relief, that it only
                              reached up to my shoulders but, thank heaven no further. John’s steady eyes watched
                              me trustingly as I approached him and carried him safely to the bank. He had been
                              standing on a rock and had not panicked at all though he had to stand up very straight
                              and tall to keep his nose out of water. I was too proud of him to scold him for
                              disobedience and too wet anyway.

                              I made John undress and put on two spare pullovers and wrapped Henry’s
                              baby blanket round his waist like a sarong. We made a small fire over which I crouched
                              with literally chattering teeth whilst Tovelo ran home to fetch a coat for me and dry clothes
                              for John.

                              Eleanor.

                              Lyamungu 16th August 1944

                              Dearest Family,

                              We have a new bull terrier bitch pup whom we have named Fanny III . So once
                              more we have a menagerie , the two dogs, two cats Susie and Winnie, and
                              some pet hens who live in the garage and are a real nuisance.

                              As John is nearly six I thought it time that he started lessons and wrote off to Dar
                              es Salaam for the correspondence course. We have had one week of lessons and I am
                              already in a state of physical and mental exhaustion. John is a most reluctant scholar.
                              “Why should I learn to read, when you can read to me?” he asks, and “Anyway why
                              should I read such stupid stuff, ‘Run Rover Run’, and ‘Mother play with baby’ . Who
                              wants to read about things like that? I don’t.”

                              He rather likes sums, but the only subject about which he is enthusiastic is
                              prehistoric history. He laps up information about ‘The Tree Dwellers’, though he is very
                              sceptical about the existence of such people. “God couldn’t be so silly to make people
                              so stupid. Fancy living in trees when it is easy to make huts like the natives.” ‘The Tree
                              Dwellers is a highly imaginative story about a revolting female called Sharptooth and her
                              offspring called Bodo. I have a very clear mental image of Sharptooth, so it came as a
                              shock to me and highly amused George when John looked at me reflectively across the
                              tea table and said, “Mummy I expect Sharptooth looked like you. You have a sharp
                              tooth too!” I have, my eye teeth are rather sharp, but I hope the resemblance stops
                              there.

                              John has an uncomfortably logical mind for a small boy. The other day he was
                              lying on the lawn staring up at the clouds when he suddenly muttered “I don’t believe it.”
                              “Believe what?” I asked. “That Jesus is coming on a cloud one day. How can he? The
                              thick ones always stay high up. What’s he going to do, jump down with a parachute?”
                              Tovelo, my kitchen boy, announced one evening that his grandmother was in the
                              kitchen and wished to see me. She was a handsome and sensible Chagga woman who
                              brought sad news. Her little granddaughter had stumbled backwards into a large cooking
                              pot of almost boiling maize meal porridge and was ‘ngongwa sana’ (very ill). I grabbed
                              a large bottle of Picric Acid and a packet of gauze which we keep for these emergencies
                              and went with her, through coffee shambas and banana groves to her daughter’s house.
                              Inside the very neat thatched hut the mother sat with the naked child lying face
                              downwards on her knee. The child’s buttocks and the back of her legs were covered in
                              huge burst blisters from which a watery pus dripped. It appeared that the accident had
                              happened on the previous day.

                              I could see that it was absolutely necessary to clean up the damaged area, and I
                              suddenly remembered that there was a trained African hospital dresser on the station. I
                              sent the father to fetch him and whilst the dresser cleaned off the sloughed skin with
                              forceps and swabs saturated in Picric Acid, I cut the gauze into small squares which I
                              soaked in the lotion and laid on the cleaned area. I thought the small pieces would be
                              easier to change especially as the whole of the most tender parts, front and back, were
                              badly scalded. The child seemed dazed and neither the dresser nor I thought she would
                              live. I gave her half an aspirin and left three more half tablets to be given four hourly.
                              Next day she seemed much brighter. I poured more lotion on the gauze
                              disturbing as few pieces as possible and again the next day and the next. After a week
                              the skin was healing well and the child eating normally. I am sure she will be all right now.
                              The new skin is a brilliant red and very shiny but it is pale round the edges of the burnt
                              area and will I hope later turn brown. The mother never uttered a word of thanks, but the
                              granny is grateful and today brought the children a bunch of bananas.

                              Eleanor.

                              c/o Game Dept. P.O.Moshi. 29th September 1944

                              Dearest Mummy,

                              I am so glad that you so enjoyed my last letter with the description of our very
                              interesting and enjoyable safari through Masailand. You said you would like an even
                              fuller description of it to pass around amongst the relations, so, to please you, I have
                              written it out in detail and enclose the result.

                              We have spent a quiet week after our exertions and all are well here.

                              Very much love,
                              Eleanor.

                              Safari in Masailand

                              George and I were at tea with our three little boys on the front lawn of our house
                              in Lyamungu, Northern Tanganyika. It was John’s sixth birthday and he and Jim, a
                              happy sturdy three year old, and Henry, aged eleven months, were munching the
                              squares of plain chocolate which rounded off the party, when George said casually
                              across the table to me, “Could you be ready by the day after tomorrow to go on
                              safari?” “Me too?” enquired John anxiously, before I had time to reply, and “Me too?”
                              echoed Jim. “yes, of course I can”, said I to George and “of course you’re coming too”,
                              to the children who rate a day spent in the bush higher than any other pleasure.
                              So in the early morning two days later, we started out happily for Masailand in a
                              three ton Ford lorry loaded to capacity with the five Rushbys, the safari paraphernalia,
                              drums of petrol and quite a retinue of servants and Game Scouts. George travelling
                              alone on his monthly safaris, takes only the cook and a couple of Game Scouts, but this was to be a safari de luxe.

                              Henry and I shared the cab with George who was driving, whilst John and Jim
                              with the faithful orderly Mabemba beside them to point out the game animals, were
                              installed upon rolls of bedding in the body of the lorry. The lorry lumbered along, first
                              through coffee shambas, and then along the main road between Moshi and Arusha.
                              After half an hour or so, we turned South off the road into a track which crossed the
                              Sanya Plains and is the beginning of this part of Masailand. Though the dry season was
                              at its height, and the pasture dry and course, we were soon passing small groups of
                              game. This area is a Game Sanctuary and the antelope grazed quietly quite undisturbed
                              by the passing lorry. Here and there zebra stood bunched by the road, a few wild
                              ostriches stalked jerkily by, and in the distance some wildebeest cavorted around in their
                              crazy way.

                              Soon the grasslands gave way to thorn bush, and we saw six fantastically tall
                              giraffe standing motionless with their heads turned enquiringly towards us. George
                              stopped the lorry so the children could have a good view of them. John was enchanted
                              but Jim, alas, was asleep.

                              At mid day we reached the Kikoletwa River and turned aside to camp. Beside
                              the river, under huge leafy trees, there was a beautiful camping spot, but the river was
                              deep and reputed to be full of crocodiles so we passed it by and made our camp
                              some distance from the river under a tall thorn tree with a flat lacy canopy. All around the
                              camp lay uprooted trees of similar size that had been pushed over by elephants. As
                              soon as the lorry stopped a camp chair was set up for me and the Game Scouts quickly
                              slashed down grass and cleared the camp site of thorns. The same boys then pitched the tent whilst George himself set up the three camp beds and the folding cot for Henry,
                              and set up the safari table and the canvas wash bowl and bath.

                              The cook in the meantime had cleared a cool spot for the kitchen , opened up the
                              chop boxes and started a fire. The cook’s boy and the dhobi (laundry boy) brought
                              water from the rather muddy river and tea was served followed shortly afterward by an
                              excellent lunch. In a very short time the camp had a suprisingly homely look. Nappies
                              fluttered from a clothes line, Henry slept peacefully in his cot, John and Jim sprawled on
                              one bed looking at comics, and I dozed comfortably on another.

                              George, with the Game Scouts, drove off in the lorry about his work. As a Game
                              Ranger it is his business to be on a constant look out for poachers, both African and
                              European, and for disease in game which might infect the valuable herds of Masai cattle.
                              The lorry did not return until dusk by which time the children had bathed enthusiastically in
                              the canvas bath and were ready for supper and bed. George backed the lorry at right
                              angles to the tent, Henry’s cot and two camp beds were set up in the lorry, the tarpaulin
                              was lashed down and the children put to bed in their novel nursery.

                              When darkness fell a large fire was lit in front of the camp, the exited children at
                              last fell asleep and George and I sat on by the fire enjoying the cool and quiet night.
                              When the fire subsided into a bed of glowing coals, it was time for our bed. During the
                              night I was awakened by the sound of breaking branches and strange indescribable
                              noises.” Just elephant”, said George comfortably and instantly fell asleep once more. I
                              didn’t! We rose with the birds next morning, but breakfast was ready and in a
                              remarkably short time the lorry had been reloaded and we were once more on our way.
                              For about half a mile we made our own track across the plain and then we turned
                              into the earth road once more. Soon we had reached the river and were looking with
                              dismay at the suspension bridge which we had to cross. At the far side, one steel
                              hawser was missing and there the bridge tilted dangerously. There was no handrail but
                              only heavy wooden posts which marked the extremities of the bridge. WhenGeorge
                              measured the distance between the posts he found that there could be barely two
                              inches to spare on either side of the cumbersome lorry.

                              He decided to risk crossing, but the children and I and all the servants were told to
                              cross the bridge and go down the track out of sight. The Game Scouts remained on the
                              river bank on the far side of the bridge and stood ready for emergencies. As I walked
                              along anxiously listening, I was horrified to hear the lorry come to a stop on the bridge.
                              There was a loud creaking noise and I instantly visualised the lorry slowly toppling over
                              into the deep crocodile infested river. The engine restarted, the lorry crossed the bridge
                              and came slowly into sight around the bend. My heart slid back into its normal position.
                              George was as imperturbable as ever and simply remarked that it had been a near
                              thing and that we would return to Lyamungu by another route.

                              Beyond the green river belt the very rutted track ran through very uninteresting
                              thorn bush country. Henry was bored and tiresome, jumping up and down on my knee
                              and yelling furiously. “Teeth”, said I apologetically to George, rashly handing a match
                              box to Henry to keep him quiet. No use at all! With a fat finger he poked out the tray
                              spilling the matches all over me and the floor. Within seconds Henry had torn the
                              matchbox to pieces with his teeth and flung the battered remains through the window.
                              An empty cigarette box met with the same fate as the match box and the yells
                              continued unabated until Henry slept from sheer exhaustion. George gave me a smile,
                              half sympathetic and half sardonic, “Enjoying the safari, my love?” he enquired. On these
                              trying occasions George has the inestimable advantage of being able to go into a Yogilike
                              trance, whereas I become irritated to screaming point.

                              In an effort to prolong Henry’s slumber I braced my feet against the floor boards
                              and tried to turn myself into a human shock absorber as we lurched along the eroded
                              track. Several times my head made contact with the bolt of a rifle in the rack above, and
                              once I felt I had shattered my knee cap against the fire extinguisher in a bracket under the
                              dash board.

                              Strange as it may seem, I really was enjoying the trip in spite of these
                              discomforts. At last after three years I was once more on safari with George. This type of
                              country was new to me and there was so much to see We passed a family of giraffe
                              standing in complete immobility only a few yards from the track. Little dick-dick. one of the smallest of the antelope, scuttled in pairs across the road and that afternoon I had my first view of Gerenuk, curious red brown antelope with extremely elongated legs and giraffe-like necks.

                              Most interesting of all was my first sight of Masai at home. We could hear a tuneful
                              jangle of cattle bells and suddenly came across herds of humped cattle browsing upon
                              the thorn bushes. The herds were guarded by athletic,striking looking Masai youths and men.
                              Each had a calabash of water slung over his shoulder and a tall, highly polished spear in his
                              hand. These herdsmen were quite unselfconscious though they wore no clothing except for one carelessly draped blanket. Very few gave us any greeting but glanced indifferently at us from under fringes of clay-daubed plaited hair . The rest of their hair was drawn back behind the ears to display split earlobes stretched into slender loops by the weight of heavy brass or copper tribal ear rings.

                              Most of the villages were set well back in the bush out of sight of the road but we did pass one
                              typical village which looked most primitive indeed. It consisted simply of a few mound like mud huts which were entirely covered with a plaster of mud and cattle dung and the whole clutch of huts were surrounded by a ‘boma’ of thorn to keep the cattle in at night and the lions out. There was a gathering of women and children on the road at this point. The children of both sexes were naked and unadorned, but the women looked very fine indeed. This is not surprising for they have little to do but adorn themselves, unlike their counterparts of other tribes who have to work hard cultivating the fields. The Masai women, and others I saw on safari, were far more amiable and cheerful looking than the men and were well proportioned.

                              They wore skirts of dressed goat skin, knee length in front but ankle length behind. Their arms
                              from elbow to wrist, and legs from knee to ankle, were encased in tight coils of copper and
                              galvanised wire. All had their heads shaved and in some cases bound by a leather band
                              embroidered in red white and blue beads. Circular ear rings hung from slit earlobes and their
                              handsome throats were encircled by stiff wire necklaces strung with brightly coloured beads. These
                              necklaces were carefully graded in size and formed deep collars almost covering their breasts.
                              About a quarter of a mile further along the road we met eleven young braves in gala attire, obviously on their way to call on the girls. They formed a line across the road and danced up and down until the lorry was dangerously near when they parted and grinned cheerfully at us. These were the only cheerful
                              looking male Masai that I saw. Like the herdsmen these youths wore only a blanket, but their
                              blankets were ochre colour, and elegantly draped over their backs. Their naked bodies gleamed with oil. Several had painted white stripes on their faces, and two had whitewashed their faces entirely which I
                              thought a pity. All had their long hair elaborately dressed and some carried not only one,
                              but two gleaming spears.

                              By mid day George decided that we had driven far enough for that day. He
                              stopped the lorry and consulted a rather unreliable map. “Somewhere near here is a
                              place called Lolbeni,” he said. “The name means Sweet Water, I hear that the
                              government have piped spring water down from the mountain into a small dam at which
                              the Masai water their cattle.” Lolbeni sounded pleasant to me. Henry was dusty and
                              cross, the rubber sheet had long slipped from my lap to the floor and I was conscious of
                              a very damp lap. ‘Sweet Waters’ I felt, would put all that right. A few hundred yards
                              away a small herd of cattle was grazing, so George lit his pipe and relaxed at last, whilst
                              a Game Scout went off to find the herdsman. The scout soon returned with an ancient
                              and emaciated Masai who was thrilled at the prospect of his first ride in a lorry and
                              offered to direct us to Lolbeni which was off the main track and about four miles away.

                              Once Lolbeni had been a small administrative post and a good track had
                              led to it, but now the Post had been abandoned and the road is dotted with vigourous
                              thorn bushes and the branches of larger thorn trees encroach on the track The road had
                              deteriorated to a mere cattle track, deeply rutted and eroded by heavy rains over a
                              period of years. The great Ford truck, however, could take it. It lurched victoriously along,
                              mowing down the obstructions, tearing off branches from encroaching thorn trees with its
                              high railed sides, spanning gorges in the track, and climbing in and out of those too wide
                              to span. I felt an army tank could not have done better.

                              I had expected Lolbeni to be a green oasis in a desert of grey thorns, but I was
                              quickly disillusioned. To be sure the thorn trees were larger and more widely spaced and
                              provided welcome shade, but the ground under the trees had been trampled by thousands of cattle into a dreary expanse of dirty grey sand liberally dotted with cattle droppings and made still more uninviting by the bleached bones of dead beasts.

                              To the right of this waste rose a high green hill which gave the place its name and from which
                              the precious water was piped, but its slopes were too steep to provide a camping site.
                              Flies swarmed everywhere and I was most relieved when George said that we would
                              stay only long enough to fill our cans with water. Even the water was a disappointment!
                              The water in the small dam was low and covered by a revolting green scum, and though
                              the water in the feeding pipe was sweet, it trickled so feebly that it took simply ages to
                              fill a four gallon can.

                              However all these disappointments were soon forgotten for we drove away
                              from the flies and dirt and trampled sand and soon, with their quiet efficiency, George
                              and his men set up a comfortable camp. John and Jim immediately started digging
                              operations in the sandy soil whilst Henry and I rested. After tea George took his shot
                              gun and went off to shoot guinea fowl and partridges for the pot. The children and I went
                              walking, keeping well in site of camp, and soon we saw a very large flock of Vulturine
                              Guineafowl, running aimlessly about and looking as tame as barnyard fowls, but melting
                              away as soon as we moved in their direction.

                              We had our second quiet and lovely evening by the camp fire, followed by a
                              peaceful night.

                              We left Lolbeni very early next morning, which was a good thing, for as we left
                              camp the herds of thirsty cattle moved in from all directions. They were accompanied by
                              Masai herdsmen, their naked bodies and blankets now covered by volcanic dust which
                              was being stirred in rising clouds of stifling ash by the milling cattle, and also by grey
                              donkeys laden with panniers filled with corked calabashes for water.

                              Our next stop was Nabarera, a Masai cattle market and trading centre, where we
                              reluctantly stayed for two days in a pokey Goverment Resthouse because George had
                              a job to do in that area. The rest was good for Henry who promptly produced a tooth
                              and was consequently much better behaved for the rest of the trip. George was away in the bush most of the day but he returned for afternoon tea and later took the children out
                              walking. We had noticed curious white dumps about a quarter mile from the resthouse
                              and on the second afternoon we set out to investigate them. Behind the dumps we
                              found passages about six foot wide, cut through solid limestone. We explored two of
                              these and found that both passages led steeply down to circular wells about two and a
                              half feet in diameter.

                              At the very foot of each passage, beside each well, rough drinking troughs had
                              been cut in the stone. The herdsmen haul the water out of the well in home made hide
                              buckets, the troughs are filled and the cattle driven down the ramps to drink at the trough.
                              It was obvious that the wells were ancient and the sloping passages new. George tells
                              me that no one knows what ancient race dug the original wells. It seems incredible that
                              these deep and narrow shafts could have been sunk without machinery. I craned my
                              neck and looked above one well and could see an immensely long shaft reaching up to
                              ground level. Small footholds were cut in the solid rock as far as I could see.
                              It seems that the Masai are as ignorant as ourselves about the origin of these
                              wells. They do say however that when their forebears first occupied what is now known
                              as Masailand, they not only found the Wanderobo tribe in the area but also a light
                              skinned people and they think it possible that these light skinned people dug the wells.
                              These people disappeared. They may have been absorbed or, more likely, they were
                              liquidated.

                              The Masai had found the well impractical in their original form and had hired
                              labourers from neighbouring tribes to cut the passages to water level. Certainly the Masai are not responsible for the wells. They are a purely pastoral people and consider manual labour extremely degrading.

                              They live chiefly on milk from their herd which they allow to go sour, and mix with blood that has been skilfully tapped from the necks of living cattle. They do not eat game meat, nor do they cultivate any
                              land. They hunt with spears, but hunt only lions, to protect their herds, and to test the skill
                              and bravery of their young warriors. What little grain they do eat is transported into
                              Masailand by traders. The next stage of our journey took us to Ngassamet where
                              George was to pick up some elephant tusks. I had looked forward particularly to this
                              stretch of road for I had heard that there was a shallow lake at which game congregates,
                              and at which I had great hopes of seeing elephants. We had come too late in the
                              season though, the lake was dry and there were only piles of elephant droppings to
                              prove that elephant had recently been there in numbers. Ngassamet, though no beauty
                              spot, was interesting. We saw more elaborate editions of the wells already described, and as this area
                              is rich in cattle we saw the aristocrats of the Masai. You cannot conceive of a more arrogant looking male than a young Masai brave striding by on sandalled feet, unselfconscious in all his glory. All the young men wore the casually draped traditional ochre blanket and carried one or more spears. But here belts and long knife sheaths of scarlet leather seem to be the fashion. Here fringes do not seem to be the thing. Most of these young Masai had their hair drawn smoothly back and twisted in a pointed queue, the whole plastered with a smooth coating of red clay. Some tied their horn shaped queues over their heads
                              so that the tip formed a deep Satanic peak on the brow. All these young men wore the traditional
                              copper earrings and I saw one or two with copper bracelets and one with a necklace of brightly coloured
                              beads.

                              It so happened that, on the day of our visit to Ngassamet, there had been a
                              baraza (meeting) which was attended by all the local headmen and elders. These old
                              men came to pay their respects to George and a more shrewd and rascally looking
                              company I have never seen, George told me that some of these men own up to three
                              thousand head of cattle and more. The chief was as fat and Rabelasian as his second in
                              command was emaciated, bucktoothed and prim. The Chief shook hands with George
                              and greeted me and settled himself on the wall of the resthouse porch opposite
                              George. The lesser headmen, after politely greeting us, grouped themselves in a
                              semi circle below the steps with their ‘aides’ respectfully standing behind them. I
                              remained sitting in the only chair and watched the proceedings with interest and
                              amusement.

                              These old Masai, I noticed, cared nothing for adornment. They had proved
                              themselves as warriors in the past and were known to be wealthy and influential so did
                              not need to make any display. Most of them had their heads comfortably shaved and
                              wore only a drab blanket or goatskin cloak. Their only ornaments were earrings whose
                              effect was somewhat marred by the serviceable and homely large safety pin that
                              dangled from the lobe of one ear. All carried staves instead of spears and all, except for
                              Buckteeth and one blind old skeleton of a man, appeared to have a keenly developed
                              sense of humour.

                              “Mummy?” asked John in an urgent whisper, “Is that old blind man nearly dead?”
                              “Yes dear”, said I, “I expect he’ll soon die.” “What here?” breathed John in a tone of
                              keen anticipation and, until the meeting broke up and the old man left, he had John’s
                              undivided attention.

                              After local news and the game situation had been discussed, the talk turned to the
                              war. “When will the war end?” moaned the fat Chief. “We have made great gifts of cattle
                              to the War Funds, we are taxed out of existence.” George replied with the Ki-Swahili
                              equivalent of ‘Sez you!’. This sally was received with laughter and the old fellows rose to
                              go. They made their farewells and dignified exits, pausing on their way to stare at our
                              pink and white Henry, who sat undismayed in his push chair giving them stare for stare
                              from his striking grey eyes.

                              Towards evening some Masai, prompted no doubt by our native servants,
                              brought a sheep for sale. It was the last night of the fast of Ramadan and our
                              Mohammedan boys hoped to feast next day at our expense. Their faces fell when
                              George refused to buy the animal. “Why should I pay fifteen shillings for a sheep?” he
                              asked, “Am I not the Bwana Nyama and is not the bush full of my sheep?” (Bwana
                              Nyama is the native name for a Game Ranger, but means literally, ‘Master of the meat’)
                              George meant that he would shoot a buck for the men next day, but this incident was to
                              have a strange sequel. Ngassamet resthouse consists of one room so small we could
                              not put up all our camp beds and George and I slept on the cement floor which was
                              unkind to my curves. The night was bitterly cold and all night long hyaenas screeched
                              hideously outside. So we rose at dawn without reluctance and were on our way before it
                              was properly light.

                              George had decided that it would be foolhardy to return home by our outward
                              route as he did not care to risk another crossing of the suspension bridge. So we
                              returned to Nabarera and there turned onto a little used track which would eventually take
                              us to the Great North Road a few miles South of Arusha. There was not much game
                              about but I saw Oryx which I had not previously seen. Soon it grew intolerably hot and I
                              think all of us but George were dozing when he suddenly stopped the lorry and pointed
                              to the right. “Mpishi”, he called to the cook, “There’s your sheep!” True enough, on that
                              dreary thorn covered plain,with not another living thing in sight, stood a fat black sheep.

                              There was an incredulous babbling from the back of the lorry. Every native
                              jumped to the ground and in no time at all the wretched sheep was caught and
                              slaughtered. I felt sick. “Oh George”, I wailed, “The poor lost sheep! I shan’t eat a scrap
                              of it.” George said nothing but went and had a look at the sheep and called out to me,
                              “Come and look at it. It was kindness to kill the poor thing, the vultures have been at it
                              already and the hyaenas would have got it tonight.” I went reluctantly and saw one eye
                              horribly torn out, and small deep wounds on the sheep’s back where the beaks of the
                              vultures had cut through the heavy fleece. Poor thing! I went back to the lorry more
                              determined than ever not to eat mutton on that trip. The Scouts and servants had no
                              such scruples. The fine fat sheep had been sent by Allah for their feast day and that was
                              the end of it.

                              “ ‘Mpishi’ is more convinced than ever that I am a wizard”, said George in
                              amusement as he started the lorry. I knew what he meant. Several times before George
                              had foretold something which had later happened. Pure coincidence, but strange enough
                              to give rise to a legend that George had the power to arrange things. “What happened
                              of course”, explained George, “Is that a flock of Masai sheep was driven to market along
                              this track yesterday or the day before. This one strayed and was not missed.”

                              The day grew hotter and hotter and for long miles we looked out for a camping
                              spot but could find little shade and no trace of water anywhere. At last, in the early
                              afternoon we reached another pokey little rest house and asked for water. “There is no
                              water here,” said the native caretaker. “Early in the morning there is water in a well nearby
                              but we are allowed only one kerosene tin full and by ten o’clock the well is dry.” I looked
                              at George in dismay for we were all so tired and dusty. “Where do the Masai from the
                              village water their cattle then?” asked George. “About two miles away through the bush.
                              If you take me with you I shall show you”, replied the native.

                              So we turned off into the bush and followed a cattle track even more tortuous than
                              the one to Lolbeni. Two Scouts walked ahead to warn us of hazards and I stretched my
                              arm across the open window to fend off thorns. Henry screamed with fright and hunger.
                              But George’s efforts to reach water went unrewarded as we were brought to a stop by
                              a deep donga. The native from the resthouse was apologetic. He had mistaken the
                              path, perhaps if we turned back we might find it. George was beyond speech. We
                              lurched back the way we had come and made our camp under the first large tree we
                              could find. Then off went our camp boys on foot to return just before dark with the water.
                              However they were cheerful for there was an unlimited quantity of dry wood for their fires
                              and meat in plenty for their feast. Long after George and I left our campfire and had gone
                              to bed, we could see the cheerful fires of the boys and hear their chatter and laughter.
                              I woke in the small hours to hear the insane cackling of hyaenas gloating over a
                              find. Later I heard scuffling around the camp table, I peered over the tailboard of the lorry
                              and saw George come out of his tent. What are you doing?” I whispered. “Looking for
                              something to throw at those bloody hyaenas,” answered George for all the world as
                              though those big brutes were tomcats on the prowl. Though the hyaenas kept up their
                              concert all night the children never stirred, nor did any of them wake at night throughout
                              the safari.

                              Early next morning I walked across to the camp kitchen to enquire into the loud
                              lamentations coming from that quarter. “Oh Memsahib”, moaned the cook, “We could
                              not sleep last night for the bad hyaenas round our tents. They have taken every scrap of
                              meat we had left over from the feast., even the meat we had left to smoke over the fire.”
                              Jim, who of our three young sons is the cook’s favourite commiserated with him. He said
                              in Ki-Swahili, which he speaks with great fluency, “Truly those hyaenas are very bad
                              creatures. They also robbed us. They have taken my hat from the table and eaten the
                              new soap from the washbowl.

                              Our last day in the bush was a pleasantly lazy one. We drove through country
                              that grew more open and less dry as we approached Arusha. We pitched our camp
                              near a large dam, and the water was a blessed sight after a week of scorched country.
                              On the plains to the right of our camp was a vast herd of native cattle enjoying a brief
                              rest after their long day trek through Masailand. They were destined to walk many more
                              weary miles before reaching their destination, a meat canning factory in Kenya.
                              The ground to the left of the camp rose gently to form a long low hill and on the
                              grassy slopes we could see wild ostriches and herds of wildebeest, zebra and
                              antelope grazing amicably side by side. In the late afternoon I watched the groups of
                              zebra and wildebeest merge into one. Then with a wildebeest leading, they walked
                              down the slope in single file to drink at the vlei . When they were satisfied, a wildebeest
                              once more led the herd up the trail. The others followed in a long and orderly file, and
                              vanished over the hill to their evening pasture.

                              When they had gone, George took up his shotgun and invited John to
                              accompany him to the dam to shoot duck. This was the first time John had acted as
                              retriever but he did very well and proudly helped to carry a mixed bag of sand grouse
                              and duck back to camp.

                              Next morning we turned into the Great North Road and passed first through
                              carefully tended coffee shambas and then through the township of Arusha, nestling at
                              the foot of towering Mount Meru. Beyond Arusha we drove through the Usa River
                              settlement where again coffee shambas and European homesteads line the road, and
                              saw before us the magnificent spectacle of Kilimanjaro unveiled, its white snow cap
                              gleaming in the sunlight. Before mid day we were home. “Well was it worth it?” enquired
                              George at lunch. “Lovely,” I replied. ”Let’s go again soon.” Then thinking regretfully of
                              our absent children I sighed, “If only Ann, George, and Kate could have gone with us
                              too.”

                              Lyamungu 10th November. 1944

                              Dearest Family.

                              Mummy wants to know how I fill in my time with George away on safari for weeks
                              on end. I do believe that you all picture me idling away my days, waited on hand and
                              foot by efficient servants! On the contrary, life is one rush and the days never long
                              enough.

                              To begin with, our servants are anything but efficient, apart from our cook, Hamisi
                              Issa, who really is competent. He suffers from frustration because our budget will not run
                              to elaborate dishes so there is little scope for his culinary art. There is one masterpiece
                              which is much appreciated by John and Jim. Hamisi makes a most realistic crocodile out
                              of pastry and stuffs its innards with minced meat. This revolting reptile is served on a
                              bed of parsley on my largest meat dish. The cook is a strict Mohammedan and
                              observes all the fasts and daily prayers and, like all Mohammedans he is very clean in
                              his person and, thank goodness, in the kitchen.

                              His wife is his pride and joy but not his helpmate. She does absolutely nothing
                              but sit in a chair in the sun all day, sipping tea and smoking cigarettes – a more
                              expensive brand than mine! It is Hamisi who sweeps out their quarters, cooks
                              delectable curries for her, and spends more than he can afford on clothing and trinkets for
                              his wife. She just sits there with her ‘Mona Lisa’ smile and her painted finger and toe
                              nails, doing absolutely nothing.

                              The thing is that natives despise women who do work and this applies especially
                              to their white employers. House servants much prefer a Memsahib who leaves
                              everything to them and is careless about locking up her pantry. When we first came to
                              Lyamungu I had great difficulty in employing a houseboy. A couple of rather efficient
                              ones did approach me but when they heard the wages I was prepared to pay and that
                              there was no number 2 boy, they simply were not interested. Eventually I took on a
                              local boy called Japhet who suits me very well except that his sight is not good and he
                              is extremely hard on the crockery. He tells me that he has lost face by working here
                              because his friends say that he works for a family that is too mean to employ a second
                              boy. I explained that with our large family we simply cannot afford to pay more, but this
                              didn’t register at all. Japhet says “But Wazungu (Europeans) all have money. They just
                              have to get it from the Bank.”

                              The third member of our staff is a strapping youth named Tovelo who helps both
                              cook and boy, and consequently works harder than either. What do I do? I chivvy the
                              servants, look after the children, supervise John’s lessons, and make all my clothing and
                              the children’s on that blessed old hand sewing machine.

                              The folk on this station entertain a good deal but we usually decline invitations
                              because we simply cannot afford to reciprocate. However, last Saturday night I invited
                              two couples to drinks and dinner. This was such an unusual event that the servants and I
                              were thrown into a flurry. In the end the dinner went off well though it ended in disaster. In
                              spite of my entreaties and exhortations to Japhet not to pile everything onto the tray at
                              once when clearing the table, he did just that. We were starting our desert and I was
                              congratulating myself that all had gone well when there was a frightful crash of breaking
                              china on the back verandah. I excused myself and got up to investigate. A large meat
                              dish, six dinner plates and four vegetable dishes lay shattered on the cement floor! I
                              controlled my tongue but what my eyes said to Japhet is another matter. What he said
                              was, “It is not my fault Memsahib. The handle of the tray came off.”

                              It is a curious thing about native servants that they never accept responsibility for
                              a mishap. If they cannot pin their misdeeds onto one of their fellow servants then the responsibility rests with God. ‘Shauri ya Mungu’, (an act of God) is a familiar cry. Fatalists
                              can be very exasperating employees.

                              The loss of my dinner service is a real tragedy because, being war time, one can
                              buy only china of the poorest quality made for the native trade. Nor was that the final
                              disaster of the evening. When we moved to the lounge for coffee I noticed that the
                              coffee had been served in the battered old safari coffee pot instead of the charming little
                              antique coffee pot which my Mother-in-law had sent for our tenth wedding anniversary.
                              As there had already been a disturbance I made no comment but resolved to give the
                              cook a piece of my mind in the morning. My instructions to the cook had been to warm
                              the coffee pot with hot water immediately before serving. On no account was he to put
                              the pewter pot on the hot iron stove. He did and the result was a small hole in the base
                              of the pot – or so he says. When I saw the pot next morning there was a two inch hole in
                              it.

                              Hamisi explained placidly how this had come about. He said he knew I would be
                              mad when I saw the little hole so he thought he would have it mended and I might not
                              notice it. Early in the morning he had taken the pewter pot to the mechanic who looks
                              after the Game Department vehicles and had asked him to repair it. The bright individual
                              got busy with the soldering iron with the most devastating result. “It’s his fault,” said
                              Hamisi, “He is a mechanic, he should have known what would happen.”
                              One thing is certain, there will be no more dinner parties in this house until the war
                              is ended.

                              The children are well and so am I, and so was George when he left on his safari
                              last Monday.

                              Much love,
                              Eleanor.

                               

                              #6266
                              TracyTracy
                              Participant

                                From Tanganyika with Love

                                continued part 7

                                With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                Oldeani Hospital. 19th September 1938

                                Dearest Family,

                                George arrived today to take us home to Mbulu but Sister Marianne will not allow
                                me to travel for another week as I had a bit of a set back after baby’s birth. At first I was
                                very fit and on the third day Sister stripped the bed and, dictionary in hand, started me
                                off on ante natal exercises. “Now make a bridge Mrs Rushby. So. Up down, up down,’
                                whilst I obediently hoisted myself aloft on heels and head. By the sixth day she
                                considered it was time for me to be up and about but alas, I soon had to return to bed
                                with a temperature and a haemorrhage. I got up and walked outside for the first time this
                                morning.

                                I have had lots of visitors because the local German settlers seem keen to see
                                the first British baby born in the hospital. They have been most kind, sending flowers
                                and little German cards of congratulations festooned with cherubs and rather sweet. Most
                                of the women, besides being pleasant, are very smart indeed, shattering my illusion that
                                German matrons are invariably fat and dowdy. They are all much concerned about the
                                Czecko-Slovakian situation, especially Sister Marianne whose home is right on the
                                border and has several relations who are Sudentan Germans. She is ant-Nazi and
                                keeps on asking me whether I think England will declare war if Hitler invades Czecko-
                                Slovakia, as though I had inside information.

                                George tells me that he has had a grass ‘banda’ put up for us at Mbulu as we are
                                both determined not to return to those prison-like quarters in the Fort. Sister Marianne is
                                horrified at the idea of taking a new baby to live in a grass hut. She told George,
                                “No,No,Mr Rushby. I find that is not to be allowed!” She is an excellent Sister but rather
                                prim and George enjoys teasing her. This morning he asked with mock seriousness,
                                “Sister, why has my wife not received her medal?” Sister fluttered her dictionary before
                                asking. “What medal Mr Rushby”. “Why,” said George, “The medal that Hitler gives to
                                women who have borne four children.” Sister started a long and involved explanation
                                about the medal being only for German mothers whilst George looked at me and
                                grinned.

                                Later. Great Jubilation here. By the noise in Sister Marianne’s sitting room last night it
                                sounded as though the whole German population had gathered to listen to the wireless
                                news. I heard loud exclamations of joy and then my bedroom door burst open and
                                several women rushed in. “Thank God “, they cried, “for Neville Chamberlain. Now there
                                will be no war.” They pumped me by the hand as though I were personally responsible
                                for the whole thing.

                                George on the other hand is disgusted by Chamberlain’s lack of guts. Doesn’t
                                know what England is coming to these days. I feel too content to concern myself with
                                world affairs. I have a fine husband and four wonderful children and am happy, happy,
                                happy.

                                Eleanor.

                                Mbulu. 30th September 1938

                                Dearest Family,

                                Here we are, comfortably installed in our little green house made of poles and
                                rushes from a nearby swamp. The house has of course, no doors or windows, but
                                there are rush blinds which roll up in the day time. There are two rooms and a little porch
                                and out at the back there is a small grass kitchen.

                                Here we have the privacy which we prize so highly as we are screened on one
                                side by a Forest Department plantation and on the other three sides there is nothing but
                                the rolling countryside cropped bare by the far too large herds of cattle and goats of the
                                Wambulu. I have a lovely lazy time. I still have Kesho-Kutwa and the cook we brought
                                with us from the farm. They are both faithful and willing souls though not very good at
                                their respective jobs. As one of these Mbeya boys goes on safari with George whose
                                job takes him from home for three weeks out of four, I have taken on a local boy to cut
                                firewood and heat my bath water and generally make himself useful. His name is Saa,
                                which means ‘Clock’

                                We had an uneventful but very dusty trip from Oldeani. Johnny Jo travelled in his
                                pram in the back of the boxbody and got covered in dust but seems none the worst for
                                it. As the baby now takes up much of my time and Kate was showing signs of
                                boredom, I have engaged a little African girl to come and play with Kate every morning.
                                She is the daughter of the head police Askari and a very attractive and dignified little
                                person she is. Her name is Kajyah. She is scrupulously clean, as all Mohammedan
                                Africans seem to be. Alas, Kajyah, though beautiful, is a bore. She simply does not
                                know how to play, so they just wander around hand in hand.

                                There are only two drawbacks to this little house. Mbulu is a very windy spot so
                                our little reed house is very draughty. I have made a little tent of sheets in one corner of
                                the ‘bedroom’ into which I can retire with Johnny when I wish to bathe or sponge him.
                                The other drawback is that many insects are attracted at night by the lamp and make it
                                almost impossible to read or sew and they have a revolting habit of falling into the soup.
                                There are no dangerous wild animals in this area so I am not at all nervous in this
                                flimsy little house when George is on safari. Most nights hyaenas come around looking
                                for scraps but our dogs, Fanny and Paddy, soon see them off.

                                Eleanor.

                                Mbulu. 25th October 1938

                                Dearest Family,

                                Great news! a vacancy has occurred in the Game Department. George is to
                                transfer to it next month. There will be an increase in salary and a brighter prospect for
                                the future. It will mean a change of scene and I shall be glad of that. We like Mbulu and
                                the people here but the rains have started and our little reed hut is anything but water
                                tight.

                                Before the rain came we had very unpleasant dust storms. I think I told you that
                                this is a treeless area and the grass which normally covers the veldt has been cropped
                                to the roots by the hungry native cattle and goats. When the wind blows the dust
                                collects in tall black columns which sweep across the country in a most spectacular
                                fashion. One such dust devil struck our hut one day whilst we were at lunch. George
                                swept Kate up in a second and held her face against his chest whilst I rushed to Johnny
                                Jo who was asleep in his pram, and stooped over the pram to protect him. The hut
                                groaned and creaked and clouds of dust blew in through the windows and walls covering
                                our persons, food, and belongings in a black pall. The dogs food bowls and an empty
                                petrol tin outside the hut were whirled up and away. It was all over in a moment but you
                                should have seen what a family of sweeps we looked. George looked at our blackened
                                Johnny and mimicked in Sister Marianne’s primmest tones, “I find that this is not to be
                                allowed.”

                                The first rain storm caught me unprepared when George was away on safari. It
                                was a terrific thunderstorm. The quite violent thunder and lightening were followed by a
                                real tropical downpour. As the hut is on a slight slope, the storm water poured through
                                the hut like a river, covering the entire floor, and the roof leaked like a lawn sprinkler.
                                Johnny Jo was snug enough in the pram with the hood raised, but Kate and I had a
                                damp miserable night. Next morning I had deep drains dug around the hut and when
                                George returned from safari he managed to borrow an enormous tarpaulin which is now
                                lashed down over the roof.

                                It did not rain during the next few days George was home but the very next night
                                we were in trouble again. I was awakened by screams from Kate and hurriedly turned up
                                the lamp to see that we were in the midst of an invasion of siafu ants. Kate’s bed was
                                covered in them. Others appeared to be raining down from the thatch. I quickly stripped
                                Kate and carried her across to my bed, whilst I rushed to the pram to see whether
                                Johnny Jo was all right. He was fast asleep, bless him, and slept on through all the
                                commotion, whilst I struggled to pick all the ants out of Kate’s hair, stopping now and
                                again to attend to my own discomfort. These ants have a painful bite and seem to
                                choose all the most tender spots. Kate fell asleep eventually but I sat up for the rest of
                                the night to make sure that the siafu kept clear of the children. Next morning the servants
                                dispersed them by laying hot ash.

                                In spite of the dampness of the hut both children are blooming. Kate has rosy
                                cheeks and Johnny Jo now has a fuzz of fair hair and has lost his ‘old man’ look. He
                                reminds me of Ann at his age.

                                Eleanor.

                                Iringa. 30th November 1938

                                Dearest Family,

                                Here we are back in the Southern Highlands and installed on the second floor of
                                another German Fort. This one has been modernised however and though not so
                                romantic as the Mbulu Fort from the outside, it is much more comfortable.We are all well
                                and I am really proud of our two safari babies who stood up splendidly to a most trying
                                journey North from Mbulu to Arusha and then South down the Great North Road to
                                Iringa where we expect to stay for a month.

                                At Arusha George reported to the headquarters of the Game Department and
                                was instructed to come on down here on Rinderpest Control. There is a great flap on in
                                case the rinderpest spread to Northern Rhodesia and possibly onwards to Southern
                                Rhodesia and South Africa. Extra veterinary officers have been sent to this area to
                                inoculate all the cattle against the disease whilst George and his African game Scouts will
                                comb the bush looking for and destroying diseased game. If the rinderpest spreads,
                                George says it may be necessary to shoot out all the game in a wide belt along the
                                border between the Southern Highlands of Tanganyika and Northern Rhodesia, to
                                prevent the disease spreading South. The very idea of all this destruction sickens us
                                both.

                                George left on a foot safari the day after our arrival and I expect I shall be lucky if I
                                see him occasionally at weekends until this job is over. When rinderpest is under control
                                George is to be stationed at a place called Nzassa in the Eastern Province about 18
                                miles from Dar es Salaam. George’s orderly, who is a tall, cheerful Game Scout called
                                Juma, tells me that he has been stationed at Nzassa and it is a frightful place! However I
                                refuse to be depressed. I now have the cheering prospect of leave to England in thirty
                                months time when we will be able to fetch Ann and George and be a proper family
                                again. Both Ann and George look happy in the snapshots which mother-in-law sends
                                frequently. Ann is doing very well at school and loves it.

                                To get back to our journey from Mbulu. It really was quite an experience. It
                                poured with rain most of the way and the road was very slippery and treacherous the
                                120 miles between Mbulu and Arusha. This is a little used earth road and the drains are
                                so blocked with silt as to be practically non existent. As usual we started our move with
                                the V8 loaded to capacity. I held Johnny on my knee and Kate squeezed in between
                                George and me. All our goods and chattels were in wooden boxes stowed in the back
                                and the two houseboys and the two dogs had to adjust themselves to the space that
                                remained. We soon ran into trouble and it took us all day to travel 47 miles. We stuck
                                several times in deep mud and had some most nasty skids. I simply clutched Kate in
                                one hand and Johnny Jo in the other and put my trust in George who never, under any
                                circumstances, loses his head. Poor Johnny only got his meals when circumstances
                                permitted. Unfortunately I had put him on a bottle only a few days before we left Mbulu
                                and, as I was unable to buy either a primus stove or Thermos flask there we had to
                                make a fire and boil water for each meal. Twice George sat out in the drizzle with a rain
                                coat rapped over his head to protect a miserable little fire of wet sticks drenched with
                                paraffin. Whilst we waited for the water to boil I pacified John by letting him suck a cube
                                of Tate and Lyles sugar held between my rather grubby fingers. Not at all according to
                                the book.

                                That night George, the children and I slept in the car having dumped our boxes
                                and the two servants in a deserted native hut. The rain poured down relentlessly all night
                                and by morning the road was more of a morass than ever. We swerved and skidded
                                alarmingly till eventually one of the wheel chains broke and had to be tied together with
                                string which constantly needed replacing. George was so patient though he was wet
                                and muddy and tired and both children were very good. Shortly before reaching the Great North Road we came upon Jack Gowan, the Stock Inspector from Mbulu. His car
                                was bogged down to its axles in black mud. He refused George’s offer of help saying
                                that he had sent his messenger to a nearby village for help.

                                I hoped that conditions would be better on the Great North Road but how over
                                optimistic I was. For miles the road runs through a belt of ‘black cotton soil’. which was
                                churned up into the consistency of chocolate blancmange by the heavy lorry traffic which
                                runs between Dodoma and Arusha. Soon the car was skidding more fantastically than
                                ever. Once it skidded around in a complete semi circle so George decided that it would
                                be safer for us all to walk whilst he negotiated the very bad patches. You should have
                                seen me plodding along in the mud and drizzle with the baby in one arm and Kate
                                clinging to the other. I was terrified of slipping with Johnny. Each time George reached
                                firm ground he would return on foot to carry Kate and in this way we covered many bad
                                patches.We were more fortunate than many other travellers. We passed several lorries
                                ditched on the side of the road and one car load of German men, all elegantly dressed in
                                lounge suits. One was busy with his camera so will have a record of their plight to laugh
                                over in the years to come. We spent another night camping on the road and next day
                                set out on the last lap of the journey. That also was tiresome but much better than the
                                previous day and we made the haven of the Arusha Hotel before dark. What a picture
                                we made as we walked through the hall in our mud splattered clothes! Even Johnny was
                                well splashed with mud but no harm was done and both he and Kate are blooming.
                                We rested for two days at Arusha and then came South to Iringa. Luckily the sun
                                came out and though for the first day the road was muddy it was no longer so slippery
                                and the second day found us driving through parched country and along badly
                                corrugated roads. The further South we came, the warmer the sun which at times blazed
                                through the windscreen and made us all uncomfortably hot. I have described the country
                                between Arusha and Dodoma before so I shan’t do it again. We reached Iringa without
                                mishap and after a good nights rest all felt full of beans.

                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate, Mbeya. 7th January 1939.

                                Dearest Family,

                                You will be surprised to note that we are back on the farm! At least the children
                                and I are here. George is away near the Rhodesian border somewhere, still on
                                Rinderpest control.

                                I had a pleasant time at Iringa, lots of invitations to morning tea and Kate had a
                                wonderful time enjoying the novelty of playing with children of her own age. She is not
                                shy but nevertheless likes me to be within call if not within sight. It was all very suburban
                                but pleasant enough. A few days before Christmas George turned up at Iringa and
                                suggested that, as he would be working in the Mbeya area, it might be a good idea for
                                the children and me to move to the farm. I agreed enthusiastically, completely forgetting
                                that after my previous trouble with the leopard I had vowed to myself that I would never
                                again live alone on the farm.

                                Alas no sooner had we arrived when Thomas, our farm headman, brought the
                                news that there were now two leopards terrorising the neighbourhood, and taking dogs,
                                goats and sheep and chickens. Traps and poisoned bait had been tried in vain and he
                                was sure that the female was the same leopard which had besieged our home before.
                                Other leopards said Thomas, came by stealth but this one advertised her whereabouts
                                in the most brazen manner.

                                George stayed with us on the farm over Christmas and all was quiet at night so I
                                cheered up and took the children for walks along the overgrown farm paths. However on
                                New Years Eve that darned leopard advertised her presence again with the most blood
                                chilling grunts and snarls. Horrible! Fanny and Paddy barked and growled and woke up
                                both children. Kate wept and kept saying, “Send it away mummy. I don’t like it.” Johnny
                                Jo howled in sympathy. What a picnic. So now the whole performance of bodyguards
                                has started again and ‘till George returns we confine our exercise to the garden.
                                Our little house is still cosy and sweet but the coffee plantation looks very
                                neglected. I wish to goodness we could sell it.

                                Eleanor.

                                Nzassa 14th February 1939.

                                Dearest Family,

                                After three months of moving around with two small children it is heavenly to be
                                settled in our own home, even though Nzassa is an isolated spot and has the reputation
                                of being unhealthy.

                                We travelled by car from Mbeya to Dodoma by now a very familiar stretch of
                                country, but from Dodoma to Dar es Salaam by train which made a nice change. We
                                spent two nights and a day in the Splendid Hotel in Dar es Salaam, George had some
                                official visits to make and I did some shopping and we took the children to the beach.
                                The bay is so sheltered that the sea is as calm as a pond and the water warm. It is
                                wonderful to see the sea once more and to hear tugs hooting and to watch the Arab
                                dhows putting out to sea with their oddly shaped sails billowing. I do love the bush, but
                                I love the sea best of all, as you know.

                                We made an early start for Nzassa on the 3rd. For about four miles we bowled
                                along a good road. This brought us to a place called Temeke where George called on
                                the District Officer. His house appears to be the only European type house there. The
                                road between Temeke and the turn off to Nzassa is quite good, but the six mile stretch
                                from the turn off to Nzassa is a very neglected bush road. There is nothing to be seen
                                but the impenetrable bush on both sides with here and there a patch of swampy
                                ground where rice is planted in the wet season.

                                After about six miles of bumpy road we reached Nzassa which is nothing more
                                than a sandy clearing in the bush. Our house however is a fine one. It was originally built
                                for the District Officer and there is a small court house which is now George’s office. The
                                District Officer died of blackwater fever so Nzassa was abandoned as an administrative
                                station being considered too unhealthy for Administrative Officers but suitable as
                                Headquarters for a Game Ranger. Later a bachelor Game Ranger was stationed here
                                but his health also broke down and he has been invalided to England. So now the
                                healthy Rushbys are here and we don’t mean to let the place get us down. So don’t
                                worry.

                                The house consists of three very large and airy rooms with their doors opening
                                on to a wide front verandah which we shall use as a living room. There is also a wide
                                back verandah with a store room at one end and a bathroom at the other. Both
                                verandahs and the end windows of the house are screened my mosquito gauze wire
                                and further protected by a trellis work of heavy expanded metal. Hasmani, the Game
                                Scout, who has been acting as caretaker, tells me that the expanded metal is very
                                necessary because lions often come out of the bush at night and roam around the
                                house. Such a comforting thought!

                                On our very first evening we discovered how necessary the mosquito gauze is.
                                After sunset the air outside is thick with mosquitos from the swamps. About an acre of
                                land has been cleared around the house. This is a sandy waste because there is no
                                water laid on here and absolutely nothing grows here except a rather revolting milky
                                desert bush called ‘Manyara’, and a few acacia trees. A little way from the house there is
                                a patch of citrus trees, grape fruit, I think, but whether they ever bear fruit I don’t know.
                                The clearing is bordered on three sides by dense dusty thorn bush which is
                                ‘lousy with buffalo’ according to George. The open side is the road which leads down to
                                George’s office and the huts for the Game Scouts. Only Hasmani and George’s orderly
                                Juma and their wives and families live there, and the other huts provide shelter for the
                                Game Scouts from the bush who come to Nzassa to collect their pay and for a short
                                rest. I can see that my daily walk will always be the same, down the road to the huts and
                                back! However I don’t mind because it is far too hot to take much exercise.

                                The climate here is really tropical and worse than on the coast because the thick
                                bush cuts us off from any sea breeze. George says it will be cooler when the rains start
                                but just now we literally drip all day. Kate wears nothing but a cotton sun suit, and Johnny
                                a napkin only, but still their little bodies are always moist. I have shorn off all Kate’s lovely
                                shoulder length curls and got George to cut my hair very short too.

                                We simply must buy a refrigerator. The butter, and even the cheese we bought
                                in Dar. simply melted into pools of oil overnight, and all our meat went bad, so we are
                                living out of tins. However once we get organised I shall be quite happy here. I like this
                                spacious house and I have good servants. The cook, Hamisi Issa, is a Swahili from Lindi
                                whom we engaged in Dar es Salaam. He is a very dignified person, and like most
                                devout Mohammedan Cooks, keeps both his person and the kitchen spotless. I
                                engaged the house boy here. He is rather a timid little body but is very willing and quite
                                capable. He has an excessively plain but cheerful wife whom I have taken on as ayah. I
                                do not really need help with the children but feel I must have a woman around just in
                                case I go down with malaria when George is away on safari.

                                Eleanor.

                                Nzassa 28th February 1939.

                                Dearest Family,

                                George’s birthday and we had a special tea party this afternoon which the
                                children much enjoyed. We have our frig now so I am able to make jellies and provide
                                them with really cool drinks.

                                Our very first visitor left this morning after spending only one night here. He is Mr
                                Ionides, the Game Ranger from the Southern Province. He acted as stand in here for a
                                short while after George’s predecessor left for England on sick leave, and where he has
                                since died. Mr Ionides returned here to hand over the range and office formally to
                                George. He seems a strange man and is from all accounts a bit of a hermit. He was at
                                one time an Officer in the Regular Army but does not look like a soldier, he wears the
                                most extraordinary clothes but nevertheless contrives to look top-drawer. He was
                                educated at Rugby and Sandhurst and is, I should say, well read. Ionides told us that he
                                hated Nzassa, particularly the house which he thinks sinister and says he always slept
                                down in the office.

                                The house, or at least one bedroom, seems to have the same effect on Kate.
                                She has been very nervous at night ever since we arrived. At first the children occupied
                                the bedroom which is now George’s. One night, soon after our arrival, Kate woke up
                                screaming to say that ‘something’ had looked at her through the mosquito net. She was
                                in such a hysterical state that inspite of the heat and discomfort I was obliged to crawl into
                                her little bed with her and remained there for the rest of the night.

                                Next night I left a night lamp burning but even so I had to sit by her bed until she
                                dropped off to sleep. Again I was awakened by ear-splitting screams and this time
                                found Kate standing rigid on her bed. I lifted her out and carried her to a chair meaning to
                                comfort her but she screeched louder than ever, “Look Mummy it’s under the bed. It’s
                                looking at us.” In vain I pointed out that there was nothing at all there. By this time
                                George had joined us and he carried Kate off to his bed in the other room whilst I got into
                                Kate’s bed thinking she might have been frightened by a rat which might also disturb
                                Johnny.

                                Next morning our houseboy remarked that he had heard Kate screaming in the
                                night from his room behind the kitchen. I explained what had happened and he must
                                have told the old Scout Hasmani who waylaid me that afternoon and informed me quite
                                seriously that that particular room was haunted by a ‘sheitani’ (devil) who hates children.
                                He told me that whilst he was acting as caretaker before our arrival he one night had his
                                wife and small daughter in the room to keep him company. He said that his small
                                daughter woke up and screamed exactly as Kate had done! Silly coincidence I
                                suppose, but such strange things happen in Africa that I decided to move the children
                                into our room and George sleeps in solitary state in the haunted room! Kate now sleeps
                                peacefully once she goes to sleep but I have to stay with her until she does.

                                I like this house and it does not seem at all sinister to me. As I mentioned before,
                                the rooms are high ceilinged and airy, and have cool cement floors. We have made one
                                end of the enclosed verandah into the living room and the other end is the playroom for
                                the children. The space in between is a sort of no-mans land taken over by the dogs as
                                their special territory.

                                Eleanor.

                                Nzassa 25th March 1939.

                                Dearest Family,

                                George is on safari down in the Rufigi River area. He is away for about three
                                weeks in the month on this job. I do hate to see him go and just manage to tick over until
                                he comes back. But what fun and excitement when he does come home.
                                Usually he returns after dark by which time the children are in bed and I have
                                settled down on the verandah with a book. The first warning is usually given by the
                                dogs, Fanny and her son Paddy. They stir, sit up, look at each other and then go and sit
                                side by side by the door with their noses practically pressed to the mosquito gauze and
                                ears pricked. Soon I can hear the hum of the car, and so can Hasmani, the old Game
                                Scout who sleeps on the back verandah with rifle and ammunition by his side when
                                George is away. When he hears the car he turns up his lamp and hurries out to rouse
                                Juma, the houseboy. Juma pokes up the fire and prepares tea which George always
                                drinks whist a hot meal is being prepared. In the meantime I hurriedly comb my hair and
                                powder my nose so that when the car stops I am ready to rush out and welcome
                                George home. The boy and Hasmani and the garden boy appear to help with the
                                luggage and to greet George and the cook, who always accompanies George on
                                Safari. The home coming is always a lively time with much shouting of greetings.
                                ‘Jambo’, and ‘Habari ya safari’, whilst the dogs, beside themselves with excitement,
                                rush around like lunatics.

                                As though his return were not happiness enough, George usually collects the
                                mail on his way home so there is news of Ann and young George and letters from you
                                and bundles of newspapers and magazines. On the day following his return home,
                                George has to deal with official mail in the office but if the following day is a weekday we
                                all, the house servants as well as ourselves, pile into the boxbody and go to Dar es
                                Salaam. To us this means a mornings shopping followed by an afternoon on the beach.
                                It is a bit cooler now that the rains are on but still very humid. Kate keeps chubby
                                and rosy in spite of the climate but Johnny is too pale though sturdy enough. He is such
                                a good baby which is just as well because Kate is a very demanding little girl though
                                sunny tempered and sweet. I appreciate her company very much when George is
                                away because we are so far off the beaten track that no one ever calls.

                                Eleanor.

                                Nzassa 28th April 1939.

                                Dearest Family,

                                You all seem to wonder how I can stand the loneliness and monotony of living at
                                Nzassa when George is on safari, but really and truly I do not mind. Hamisi the cook
                                always goes on safari with George and then the houseboy Juma takes over the cooking
                                and I do the lighter housework. the children are great company during the day, and when
                                they are settled for the night I sit on the verandah and read or write letters or I just dream.
                                The verandah is entirely enclosed with both wire mosquito gauze and a trellis
                                work of heavy expanded metal, so I am safe from all intruders be they human, animal, or
                                insect. Outside the air is alive with mosquitos and the cicadas keep up their monotonous
                                singing all night long. My only companions on the verandah are the pale ghecco lizards
                                on the wall and the two dogs. Fanny the white bull terrier, lies always near my feet
                                dozing happily, but her son Paddy, who is half Airedale has a less phlegmatic
                                disposition. He sits alert and on guard by the metal trellis work door. Often a lion grunts
                                from the surrounding bush and then his hackles rise and he stands up stiffly with his nose
                                pressed to the door. Old Hasmani from his bedroll on the back verandah, gives a little
                                cough just to show he is awake. Sometimes the lions are very close and then I hear the
                                click of a rifle bolt as Hasmani loads his rifle – but this is usually much later at night when
                                the lights are out. One morning I saw large pug marks between the wall of my bedroom
                                and the garage but I do not fear lions like I did that beastly leopard on the farm.
                                A great deal of witchcraft is still practiced in the bush villages in the
                                neighbourhood. I must tell you about old Hasmani’s baby in connection with this. Last
                                week Hasmani came to me in great distress to say that his baby was ‘Ngongwa sana ‘
                                (very ill) and he thought it would die. I hurried down to the Game Scouts quarters to see
                                whether I could do anything for the child and found the mother squatting in the sun
                                outside her hut with the baby on her lap. The mother was a young woman but not an
                                attractive one. She appeared sullen and indifferent compared with old Hasmani who
                                was very distressed. The child was very feverish and breathing with difficulty and
                                seemed to me to be suffering from bronchitis if not pneumonia. I rubbed his back and
                                chest with camphorated oil and dosed him with aspirin and liquid quinine. I repeated the
                                treatment every four hours, but next day there was no apparent improvement.
                                In the afternoon Hasmani begged me to give him that night off duty and asked for
                                a loan of ten shillings. He explained to me that it seemed to him that the white man’s
                                medicine had failed to cure his child and now he wished to take the child to the local witch
                                doctor. “For ten shillings” said Hasmani, “the Maganga will drive the devil out of my
                                child.” “How?” asked I. “With drums”, said Hasmani confidently. I did not know what to
                                do. I thought the child was too ill to be exposed to the night air, yet I knew that if I
                                refused his request and the child were to die, Hasmani and all the other locals would hold
                                me responsible. I very reluctantly granted his request. I was so troubled by the matter
                                that I sent for George’s office clerk. Daniel, and asked him to accompany Hasmani to the
                                ceremony and to report to me the next morning. It started to rain after dark and all night
                                long I lay awake in bed listening to the drums and the light rain. Next morning when I
                                went out to the kitchen to order breakfast I found a beaming Hasmani awaiting me.
                                “Memsahib”, he said. “My child is well, the fever is now quite gone, the Maganga drove
                                out the devil just as I told you.” Believe it or not, when I hurried to his quarters after
                                breakfast I found the mother suckling a perfectly healthy child! It may be my imagination
                                but I thought the mother looked pretty smug.The clerk Daniel told me that after Hasmani
                                had presented gifts of money and food to the ‘Maganga’, the naked baby was placed
                                on a goat skin near the drums. Most of the time he just lay there but sometimes the witch
                                doctor picked him up and danced with the child in his arms. Daniel seemed reluctant to
                                talk about it. Whatever mumbo jumbo was used all this happened a week ago and the
                                baby has never looked back.

                                Eleanor.

                                Nzassa 3rd July 1939.

                                Dearest Family,

                                Did I tell you that one of George’s Game Scouts was murdered last month in the
                                Maneromango area towards the Rufigi border. He was on routine patrol, with a porter
                                carrying his bedding and food, when they suddenly came across a group of African
                                hunters who were busy cutting up a giraffe which they had just killed. These hunters were
                                all armed with muzzle loaders, spears and pangas, but as it is illegal to kill giraffe without
                                a permit, the Scout went up to the group to take their names. Some argument ensued
                                and the Scout was stabbed.

                                The District Officer went to the area to investigate and decided to call in the Police
                                from Dar es Salaam. A party of police went out to search for the murderers but after
                                some days returned without making any arrests. George was on an elephant control
                                safari in the Bagamoyo District and on his return through Dar es Salaam he heard of the
                                murder. George was furious and distressed to hear the news and called in here for an
                                hour on his way to Maneromango to search for the murderers himself.

                                After a great deal of strenuous investigation he arrested three poachers, put them
                                in jail for the night at Maneromango and then brought them to Dar es Salaam where they
                                are all now behind bars. George will now have to prosecute in the Magistrate’s Court
                                and try and ‘make a case’ so that the prisoners may be committed to the High Court to
                                be tried for murder. George is convinced of their guilt and justifiably proud to have
                                succeeded where the police failed.

                                George had to borrow handcuffs for the prisoners from the Chief at
                                Maneromango and these he brought back to Nzassa after delivering the prisoners to
                                Dar es Salaam so that he may return them to the Chief when he revisits the area next
                                week.

                                I had not seen handcuffs before and picked up a pair to examine them. I said to
                                George, engrossed in ‘The Times’, “I bet if you were arrested they’d never get
                                handcuffs on your wrist. Not these anyway, they look too small.” “Standard pattern,”
                                said George still concentrating on the newspaper, but extending an enormous relaxed
                                left wrist. So, my dears, I put a bracelet round his wrist and as there was a wide gap I
                                gave a hard squeeze with both hands. There was a sharp click as the handcuff engaged
                                in the first notch. George dropped the paper and said, “Now you’ve done it, my love,
                                one set of keys are in the Dar es Salaam Police Station, and the others with the Chief at
                                Maneromango.” You can imagine how utterly silly I felt but George was an angel about it
                                and said as he would have to go to Dar es Salaam we might as well all go.

                                So we all piled into the car, George, the children and I in the front, and the cook
                                and houseboy, immaculate in snowy khanzus and embroidered white caps, a Game
                                Scout and the ayah in the back. George never once complain of the discomfort of the
                                handcuff but I was uncomfortably aware that it was much too tight because his arm
                                above the cuff looked red and swollen and the hand unnaturally pale. As the road is so
                                bad George had to use both hands on the wheel and all the time the dangling handcuff
                                clanked against the dashboard in an accusing way.

                                We drove straight to the Police Station and I could hear the roars of laughter as
                                George explained his predicament. Later I had to put up with a good deal of chaffing
                                and congratulations upon putting the handcuffs on George.

                                Eleanor.

                                Nzassa 5th August 1939

                                Dearest Family,

                                George made a point of being here for Kate’s fourth birthday last week. Just
                                because our children have no playmates George and I always do all we can to make
                                birthdays very special occasions. We went to Dar es Salaam the day before the
                                birthday and bought Kate a very sturdy tricycle with which she is absolutely delighted.
                                You will be glad to know that your parcels arrived just in time and Kate loved all your
                                gifts especially the little shop from Dad with all the miniature tins and packets of
                                groceries. The tea set was also a great success and is much in use.

                                We had a lively party which ended with George and me singing ‘Happy
                                Birthday to you’, and ended with a wild game with balloons. Kate wore her frilly white net
                                party frock and looked so pretty that it seemed a shame that there was no one but us to
                                see her. Anyway it was a good party. I wish so much that you could see the children.
                                Kate keeps rosy and has not yet had malaria. Johnny Jo is sturdy but pale. He
                                runs a temperature now and again but I am not sure whether this is due to teething or
                                malaria. Both children of course take quinine every day as George and I do. George
                                quite frequently has malaria in spite of prophylactic quinine but this is not surprising as he
                                got the germ thoroughly established in his system in his early elephant hunting days. I
                                get it too occasionally but have not been really ill since that first time a month after my
                                arrival in the country.

                                Johnny is such a good baby. His chief claim to beauty is his head of soft golden
                                curls but these are due to come off on his first birthday as George considers them too
                                girlish. George left on safari the day after the party and the very next morning our wood
                                boy had a most unfortunate accident. He was chopping a rather tough log when a chip
                                flew up and split his upper lip clean through from mouth to nostril exposing teeth and
                                gums. A truly horrible sight and very bloody. I cleaned up the wound as best I could
                                and sent him off to the hospital at Dar es Salaam on the office bicycle. He wobbled
                                away wretchedly down the road with a white cloth tied over his mouth to keep off the
                                dust. He returned next day with his lip stitched and very swollen and bearing a
                                resemblance to my lip that time I used the hair remover.

                                Eleanor.

                                Splendid Hotel. Dar es Salaam 7th September 1939

                                Dearest Family,

                                So now another war has started and it has disrupted even our lives. We have left
                                Nzassa for good. George is now a Lieutenant in the King’s African Rifles and the children
                                and I are to go to a place called Morogoro to await further developments.
                                I was glad to read in today’s paper that South Africa has declared war on
                                Germany. I would have felt pretty small otherwise in this hotel which is crammed full of
                                men who have been called up for service in the Army. George seems exhilarated by
                                the prospect of active service. He is bursting out of his uniform ( at the shoulders only!)
                                and all too ready for the fray.

                                The war came as a complete surprise to me stuck out in the bush as I was without
                                wireless or mail. George had been away for a fortnight so you can imagine how
                                surprised I was when a messenger arrived on a bicycle with a note from George. The
                                note informed me that war had been declared and that George, as a Reserve Officer in
                                the KAR had been called up. I was to start packing immediately and be ready by noon
                                next day when George would arrive with a lorry for our goods and chattels. I started to
                                pack immediately with the help of the houseboy and by the time George arrived with
                                the lorry only the frig remained to be packed and this was soon done.

                                Throughout the morning Game Scouts had been arriving from outlying parts of
                                the District. I don’t think they had the least idea where they were supposed to go or
                                whom they were to fight but were ready to fight anybody, anywhere, with George.
                                They all looked very smart in well pressed uniforms hung about with water bottles and
                                ammunition pouches. The large buffalo badge on their round pill box hats absolutely
                                glittered with polish. All of course carried rifles and when George arrived they all lined up
                                and they looked most impressive. I took some snaps but unfortunately it was drizzling
                                and they may not come out well.

                                We left Nzassa without a backward glance. We were pretty fed up with it by
                                then. The children and I are spending a few days here with George but our luggage, the
                                dogs, and the houseboys have already left by train for Morogoro where a small house
                                has been found for the children and me.

                                George tells me that all the German males in this Territory were interned without a
                                hitch. The whole affair must have been very well organised. In every town and
                                settlement special constables were sworn in to do the job. It must have been a rather
                                unpleasant one but seems to have gone without incident. There is a big transit camp
                                here at Dar for the German men. Later they are to be sent out of the country, possibly to
                                Rhodesia.

                                The Indian tailors in the town are all terribly busy making Army uniforms, shorts
                                and tunics in khaki drill. George swears that they have muddled their orders and he has
                                been given the wrong things. Certainly the tunic is far too tight. His hat, a khaki slouch hat
                                like you saw the Australians wearing in the last war, is also too small though it is the
                                largest they have in stock. We had a laugh over his other equipment which includes a
                                small canvas haversack and a whistle on a black cord. George says he feels like he is
                                back in his Boy Scouting boyhood.

                                George has just come in to say the we will be leaving for Morogoro tomorrow
                                afternoon.

                                Eleanor.

                                Morogoro 14th September 1939

                                Dearest Family,

                                Morogoro is a complete change from Nzassa. This is a large and sprawling
                                township. The native town and all the shops are down on the flat land by the railway but
                                all the European houses are away up the slope of the high Uluguru Mountains.
                                Morogoro was a flourishing town in the German days and all the streets are lined with
                                trees for coolness as is the case in other German towns. These trees are the flamboyant
                                acacia which has an umbrella top and throws a wide but light shade.

                                Most of the houses have large gardens so they cover a considerable area and it
                                is quite a safari for me to visit friends on foot as our house is on the edge of this area and
                                the furthest away from the town. Here ones house is in accordance with ones seniority in
                                Government service. Ours is a simple affair, just three lofty square rooms opening on to
                                a wide enclosed verandah. Mosquitoes are bad here so all doors and windows are
                                screened and we will have to carry on with our daily doses of quinine.

                                George came up to Morogoro with us on the train. This was fortunate because I
                                went down with a sharp attack of malaria at the hotel on the afternoon of our departure
                                from Dar es Salaam. George’s drastic cure of vast doses of quinine, a pillow over my
                                head, and the bed heaped with blankets soon brought down the temperature so I was
                                fit enough to board the train but felt pretty poorly on the trip. However next day I felt
                                much better which was a good thing as George had to return to Dar es Salaam after two
                                days. His train left late at night so I did not see him off but said good-bye at home
                                feeling dreadful but trying to keep the traditional stiff upper lip of the wife seeing her
                                husband off to the wars. He hopes to go off to Abyssinia but wrote from Dar es Salaam
                                to say that he is being sent down to Rhodesia by road via Mbeya to escort the first
                                detachment of Rhodesian white troops.

                                First he will have to select suitable camping sites for night stops and arrange for
                                supplies of food. I am very pleased as it means he will be safe for a while anyway. We
                                are both worried about Ann and George in England and wonder if it would be safer to
                                have them sent out.

                                Eleanor.

                                Morogoro 4th November 1939

                                Dearest Family,

                                My big news is that George has been released from the Army. He is very
                                indignant and disappointed because he hoped to go to Abyssinia but I am terribly,
                                terribly glad. The Chief Secretary wrote a very nice letter to George pointing out that he
                                would be doing a greater service to his country by his work of elephant control, giving
                                crop protection during the war years when foodstuffs are such a vital necessity, than by
                                doing a soldiers job. The Government plan to start a huge rice scheme in the Rufiji area,
                                and want George to control the elephant and hippo there. First of all though. he must go
                                to the Southern Highlands Province where there is another outbreak of Rinderpest, to
                                shoot out diseased game especially buffalo, which might spread the disease.

                                So off we go again on our travels but this time we are leaving the two dogs
                                behind in the care of Daniel, the Game Clerk. Fanny is very pregnant and I hate leaving
                                her behind but the clerk has promised to look after her well. We are taking Hamisi, our
                                dignified Swahili cook and the houseboy Juma and his wife whom we brought with us
                                from Nzassa. The boy is not very good but his wife makes a cheerful and placid ayah
                                and adores Johnny.

                                Eleanor.

                                Iringa 8th December 1939

                                Dearest Family,

                                The children and I are staying in a small German house leased from the
                                Custodian of Enemy Property. I can’t help feeling sorry for the owners who must be in
                                concentration camps somewhere.George is away in the bush dealing with the
                                Rinderpest emergency and the cook has gone with him. Now I have sent the houseboy
                                and the ayah away too. Two days ago my houseboy came and told me that he felt
                                very ill and asked me to write a ‘chit’ to the Indian Doctor. In the note I asked the Doctor
                                to let me know the nature of his complaint and to my horror I got a note from him to say
                                that the houseboy had a bad case of Venereal Disease. Was I horrified! I took it for
                                granted that his wife must be infected too and told them both that they would have to
                                return to their home in Nzassa. The boy shouted and the ayah wept but I paid them in
                                lieu of notice and gave them money for the journey home. So there I was left servant
                                less with firewood to chop, a smokey wood burning stove to control, and of course, the
                                two children.

                                To add to my troubles Johnny had a temperature so I sent for the European
                                Doctor. He diagnosed malaria and was astonished at the size of Johnny’s spleen. He
                                said that he must have had suppressed malaria over a long period and the poor child
                                must now be fed maximum doses of quinine for a long time. The Doctor is a fatherly
                                soul, he has been recalled from retirement to do this job as so many of the young
                                doctors have been called up for service with the army.

                                I told him about my houseboy’s complaint and the way I had sent him off
                                immediately, and he was very amused at my haste, saying that it is most unlikely that
                                they would have passed the disease onto their employers. Anyway I hated the idea. I
                                mean to engage a houseboy locally, but will do without an ayah until we return to
                                Morogoro in February.

                                Something happened today to cheer me up. A telegram came from Daniel which
                                read, “FLANNEL HAS FIVE CUBS.”

                                Eleanor.

                                Morogoro 10th March 1940

                                Dearest Family,

                                We are having very heavy rain and the countryside is a most beautiful green. In
                                spite of the weather George is away on safari though it must be very wet and
                                unpleasant. He does work so hard at his elephant hunting job and has got very thin. I
                                suppose this is partly due to those stomach pains he gets and the doctors don’t seem
                                to diagnose the trouble.

                                Living in Morogoro is much like living in a country town in South Africa, particularly
                                as there are several South African women here. I go out quite often to morning teas. We
                                all take our war effort knitting, and natter, and are completely suburban.
                                I sometimes go and see an elderly couple who have been interred here. They
                                are cold shouldered by almost everyone else but I cannot help feeling sorry for them.
                                Usually I go by invitation because I know Mrs Ruppel prefers to be prepared and
                                always has sandwiches and cake. They both speak English but not fluently and
                                conversation is confined to talking about my children and theirs. Their two sons were
                                students in Germany when war broke out but are now of course in the German Army.
                                Such nice looking chaps from their photographs but I suppose thorough Nazis. As our
                                conversation is limited I usually ask to hear a gramophone record or two. They have a
                                large collection.

                                Janet, the ayah whom I engaged at Mbeya, is proving a great treasure. She is a
                                trained hospital ayah and is most dependable and capable. She is, perhaps, a little strict
                                but the great thing is that I can trust her with the children out of my sight.
                                Last week I went out at night for the first time without George. The occasion was
                                a farewell sundowner given by the Commissioner of Prisoners and his wife. I was driven
                                home by the District Officer and he stopped his car by the back door in a large puddle.
                                Ayah came to the back door, storm lamp in hand, to greet me. My escort prepared to
                                drive off but the car stuck. I thought a push from me might help, so without informing the
                                driver, I pushed as hard as I could on the back of the car. Unfortunately the driver
                                decided on other tactics. He put the engine in reverse and I was knocked flat on my back
                                in the puddle. The car drove forward and away without the driver having the least idea of
                                what happened. The ayah was in quite a state, lifting me up and scolding me for my
                                stupidity as though I were Kate. I was a bit shaken but non the worse and will know
                                better next time.

                                Eleanor.

                                Morogoro 14th July 1940

                                Dearest Family,

                                How good it was of Dad to send that cable to Mother offering to have Ann and
                                George to live with you if they are accepted for inclusion in the list of children to be
                                evacuated to South Africa. It would be wonderful to know that they are safely out of the
                                war zone and so much nearer to us but I do dread the thought of the long sea voyage
                                particularly since we heard the news of the sinking of that liner carrying child evacuees to
                                Canada. I worry about them so much particularly as George is so often away on safari.
                                He is so comforting and calm and I feel brave and confident when he is home.
                                We have had no news from England for five weeks but, when she last wrote,
                                mother said the children were very well and that she was sure they would be safe in the
                                country with her.

                                Kate and John are growing fast. Kate is such a pretty little girl, rosy in spite of the
                                rather trying climate. I have allowed her hair to grow again and it hangs on her shoulders
                                in shiny waves. John is a more slightly built little boy than young George was, and quite
                                different in looks. He has Dad’s high forehead and cleft chin, widely spaced brown eyes
                                that are not so dark as mine and hair that is still fair and curly though ayah likes to smooth it
                                down with water every time she dresses him. He is a shy child, and although he plays
                                happily with Kate, he does not care to play with other children who go in the late
                                afternoons to a lawn by the old German ‘boma’.

                                Kate has playmates of her own age but still rather clings to me. Whilst she loves
                                to have friends here to play with her, she will not go to play at their houses unless I go
                                too and stay. She always insists on accompanying me when I go out to morning tea
                                and always calls Janet “John’s ayah”. One morning I went to a knitting session at a
                                neighbours house. We are all knitting madly for the troops. As there were several other
                                women in the lounge and no other children, I installed Kate in the dining room with a
                                colouring book and crayons. My hostess’ black dog was chained to the dining room
                                table leg, but as he and Kate are on friendly terms I was not bothered by this.
                                Some time afterwards, during a lull in conversation, I heard a strange drumming
                                noise coming from the dining room. I went quickly to investigate and, to my horror, found
                                Kate lying on her back with the dog chain looped around her neck. The frightened dog
                                was straining away from her as far as he could get and the chain was pulled so tightly
                                around her throat that she could not scream. The drumming noise came from her heels
                                kicking in a panic on the carpet.

                                Even now I do not know how Kate got herself into this predicament. Luckily no
                                great harm was done but I think I shall do my knitting at home in future.

                                Eleanor.

                                Morogoro 16th November 1940

                                Dearest Family,

                                I much prefer our little house on the hillside to the larger one we had down below.
                                The only disadvantage is that the garden is on three levels and both children have had
                                some tumbles down the steps on the tricycle. John is an extremely stoical child. He
                                never cries when he hurts himself.

                                I think I have mentioned ‘Morningside’ before. It is a kind of Resthouse high up in
                                the Uluguru Mountains above Morogoro. Jess Howe-Browne, who runs the large
                                house as a Guest House, is a wonderful woman. Besides running the boarding house
                                she also grows vegetables, flowers and fruit for sale in Morogoro and Dar es Salaam.
                                Her guests are usually women and children from Dar es Salaam who come in the hot
                                season to escape the humidity on the coast. Often the mothers leave their children for
                                long periods in Jess Howe-Browne’s care. There is a road of sorts up the mountain side
                                to Morningside, but this is so bad that cars do not attempt it and guests are carried up
                                the mountain in wicker chairs lashed to poles. Four men carry an adult, and two a child,
                                and there are of course always spare bearers and they work in shifts.

                                Last week the children and I went to Morningside for the day as guests. John
                                rode on my lap in one chair and Kate in a small chair on her own. This did not please
                                Kate at all. The poles are carried on the bearers shoulders and one is perched quite high.
                                The motion is a peculiar rocking one. The bearers chant as they go and do not seem
                                worried by shortness of breath! They are all hillmen of course and are, I suppose, used
                                to trotting up and down to the town.

                                Morningside is well worth visiting and we spent a delightful day there. The fresh
                                cool air is a great change from the heavy air of the valley. A river rushes down the
                                mountain in a series of cascades, and the gardens are shady and beautiful. Behind the
                                property is a thick indigenous forest which stretches from Morningside to the top of the
                                mountain. The house is an old German one, rather in need of repair, but Jess has made
                                it comfortable and attractive, with some of her old family treasures including a fine old
                                Grandfather clock. We had a wonderful lunch which included large fresh strawberries and
                                cream. We made the return journey again in the basket chairs and got home before dark.
                                George returned home at the weekend with a baby elephant whom we have
                                called Winnie. She was rescued from a mud hole by some African villagers and, as her
                                mother had abandoned her, they took her home and George was informed. He went in
                                the truck to fetch her having first made arrangements to have her housed in a shed on the
                                Agriculture Department Experimental Farm here. He has written to the Game Dept
                                Headquarters to inform the Game Warden and I do not know what her future will be, but
                                in the meantime she is our pet. George is afraid she will not survive because she has
                                had a very trying time. She stands about waist high and is a delightful creature and quite
                                docile. Asian and African children as well as Europeans gather to watch her and George
                                encourages them to bring fruit for her – especially pawpaws which she loves.
                                Whilst we were there yesterday one of the local ladies came, very smartly
                                dressed in a linen frock, silk stockings, and high heeled shoes. She watched fascinated
                                whilst Winnie neatly split a pawpaw and removed the seeds with her trunk, before
                                scooping out the pulp and putting it in her mouth. It was a particularly nice ripe pawpaw
                                and Winnie enjoyed it so much that she stretched out her trunk for more. The lady took
                                fright and started to run with Winnie after her, sticky trunk outstretched. Quite an
                                entertaining sight. George managed to stop Winnie but not before she had left a gooey
                                smear down the back of the immaculate frock.

                                Eleanor.

                                 

                                #6265
                                TracyTracy
                                Participant

                                  From Tanganyika with Love

                                  continued  ~ part 6

                                  With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                  Mchewe 6th June 1937

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Home again! We had an uneventful journey. Kate was as good as gold all the
                                  way. We stopped for an hour at Bulawayo where we had to change trains but
                                  everything was simplified for me by a very pleasant man whose wife shared my
                                  compartment. Not only did he see me through customs but he installed us in our new
                                  train and his wife turned up to see us off with magazines for me and fruit and sweets for
                                  Kate. Very, very kind, don’t you think?

                                  Kate and I shared the compartment with a very pretty and gentle girl called
                                  Clarice Simpson. She was very worried and upset because she was going home to
                                  Broken Hill in response to a telegram informing her that her young husband was
                                  dangerously ill from Blackwater Fever. She was very helpful with Kate whose
                                  cheerfulness helped Clarice, I think, though I, quite unintentionally was the biggest help
                                  at the end of our journey. Remember the partial dentures I had had made just before
                                  leaving Cape Town? I know I shall never get used to the ghastly things, I’ve had them
                                  two weeks now and they still wobble. Well this day I took them out and wrapped them
                                  in a handkerchief, but when we were packing up to leave the train I could find the
                                  handkerchief but no teeth! We searched high and low until the train had slowed down to
                                  enter Broken Hill station. Then Clarice, lying flat on the floor, spied the teeth in the dark
                                  corner under the bottom bunk. With much stretching she managed to retrieve the
                                  dentures covered in grime and fluff. My look of horror, when I saw them, made young
                                  Clarice laugh. She was met at the station by a very grave elderly couple. I do wonder
                                  how things turned out for her.

                                  I stayed overnight with Kate at the Great Northern Hotel, and we set off for
                                  Mbeya by plane early in the morning. One of our fellow passengers was a young
                                  mother with a three week old baby. How ideas have changed since Ann was born. This
                                  time we had a smooth passage and I was the only passenger to get airsick. Although
                                  there were other women passengers it was a man once again, who came up and
                                  offered to help. Kate went off with him amiably and he entertained her until we touched
                                  down at Mbeya.

                                  George was there to meet us with a wonderful surprise, a little red two seater
                                  Ford car. She is a bit battered and looks a bit odd because the boot has been
                                  converted into a large wooden box for carrying raw salt, but she goes like the wind.
                                  Where did George raise the cash to buy a car? Whilst we were away he found a small
                                  cave full of bat guano near a large cave which is worked by a man called Bob Sargent.
                                  As Sargent did not want any competition he bought the contents of the cave from
                                  George giving him the small car as part payment.

                                  It was lovely to return to our little home and find everything fresh and tidy and the
                                  garden full of colour. But it was heartbreaking to go into the bedroom and see George’s
                                  precious forgotten boots still standing by his empty bed.

                                  With much love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe 25th June 1937

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Last Friday George took Kate and me in the little red Ford to visit Mr Sargent’s
                                  camp on the Songwe River which cuts the Mbeya-Mbosi road. Mr Sargent bought
                                  Hicky-Wood’s guano deposit and also our small cave and is making a good living out of
                                  selling the bat guano to the coffee farmers in this province. George went to try to interest
                                  him in a guano deposit near Kilwa in the Southern Province. Mr Sargent agreed to pay
                                  25 pounds to cover the cost of the car trip and pegging costs. George will make the trip
                                  to peg the claim and take samples for analysis. If the quality is sufficiently high, George
                                  and Mr Sargent will go into partnership. George will work the claim and ship out the
                                  guano from Kilwa which is on the coast of the Southern Province of Tanganyika. So now
                                  we are busy building castles in the air once more.

                                  On Saturday we went to Mbeya where George had to attend a meeting of the
                                  Trout Association. In the afternoon he played in a cricket match so Kate and I spent the
                                  whole day with the wife of the new Superintendent of Police. They have a very nice
                                  new house with lawns and a sunken rose garden. Kate had a lovely romp with Kit, her
                                  three year old son.

                                  Mrs Wolten also has two daughters by a previous marriage. The elder girl said to
                                  me, “Oh Mrs Rushby your husband is exactly like the strong silent type of man I
                                  expected to see in Africa but he is the only one I have seen. I think he looks exactly like
                                  those men in the ‘Barney’s Tobacco’ advertisements.”

                                  I went home with a huge pile of magazines to keep me entertained whilst
                                  George is away on the Kilwa trip.

                                  Lots of love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe 9th July 1937

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  George returned on Monday from his Kilwa safari. He had an entertaining
                                  tale to tell.

                                  Before he approached Mr Sargent about going shares in the Kilwa guano
                                  deposit he first approached a man on the Lupa who had done very well out of a small
                                  gold reef. This man, however said he was not interested so you can imagine how
                                  indignant George was when he started on his long trip, to find himself being trailed by
                                  this very man and a co-driver in a powerful Ford V8 truck. George stopped his car and
                                  had some heated things to say – awful threats I imagine as to what would happen to
                                  anyone who staked his claim. Then he climbed back into our ancient little two seater and
                                  went off like a bullet driving all day and most of the night. As the others took turns in
                                  driving you can imagine what a feat it was for George to arrive in Kilwa ahead of them.
                                  When they drove into Kilwa he met them with a bright smile and a bit of bluff –
                                  quite justifiable under the circumstances I think. He said, you chaps can have a rest now,
                                  you’re too late.” He then whipped off and pegged the claim. he brought some samples
                                  of guano back but until it has been analysed he will not know whether the guano will be
                                  an economic proposition or not. George is not very hopeful. He says there is a good
                                  deal of sand mixed with the guano and that much of it was damp.

                                  The trip was pretty eventful for Kianda, our houseboy. The little two seater car
                                  had been used by its previous owner for carting bags of course salt from his salt pans.
                                  For this purpose the dicky seat behind the cab had been removed, and a kind of box
                                  built into the boot of the car. George’s camp kit and provisions were packed into this
                                  open box and Kianda perched on top to keep an eye on the belongings. George
                                  travelled so fast on the rough road that at some point during the night Kianda was
                                  bumped off in the middle of the Game Reserve. George did not notice that he was
                                  missing until the next morning. He concluded, quite rightly as it happened, that Kianda
                                  would be picked up by the rival truck so he continued his journey and Kianda rejoined
                                  him at Kilwa.

                                  Believe it or not, the same thing happened on the way back but fortunately this
                                  time George noticed his absence. He stopped the car and had just started back on his
                                  tracks when Kianda came running down the road still clutching the unlighted storm lamp
                                  which he was holding in his hand when he fell. The glass was not even cracked.
                                  We are finding it difficult just now to buy native chickens and eggs. There has
                                  been an epidemic amongst the poultry and one hesitates to eat the survivors. I have a
                                  brine tub in which I preserve our surplus meat but I need the chickens for soup.
                                  I hope George will be home for some months. He has arranged to take a Mr
                                  Blackburn, a wealthy fruit farmer from Elgin, Cape, on a hunting safari during September
                                  and October and that should bring in some much needed cash. Lillian Eustace has
                                  invited Kate and me to spend the whole of October with her in Tukuyu.
                                  I am so glad that you so much enjoy having Ann and George with you. We miss
                                  them dreadfully. Kate is a pretty little girl and such a little madam. You should hear the
                                  imperious way in which she calls the kitchenboy for her meals. “Boy Brekkis, Boy Lunch,
                                  and Boy Eggy!” are her three calls for the day. She knows no Ki-Swahili.

                                  Eleanor

                                  Mchewe 8th October 1937

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  I am rapidly becoming as superstitious as our African boys. They say the wild
                                  animals always know when George is away from home and come down to have their
                                  revenge on me because he has killed so many.

                                  I am being besieged at night by a most beastly leopard with a half grown cub. I
                                  have grown used to hearing leopards grunt as they hunt in the hills at night but never
                                  before have I had one roaming around literally under the windows. It has been so hot at
                                  night lately that I have been sleeping with my bedroom door open onto the verandah. I
                                  felt quite safe because the natives hereabouts are law-abiding and in any case I always
                                  have a boy armed with a club sleeping in the kitchen just ten yards away. As an added
                                  precaution I also have a loaded .45 calibre revolver on my bedside table, and Fanny
                                  our bullterrier, sleeps on the mat by my bed. I am also looking after Barney, a fine
                                  Airedale dog belonging to the Costers. He slept on a mat by the open bedroom door
                                  near a dimly burning storm lamp.

                                  As usual I went to sleep with an easy mind on Monday night, but was awakened
                                  in the early hours of Tuesday by the sound of a scuffle on the front verandah. The noise
                                  was followed by a scream of pain from Barney. I jumped out of bed and, grabbing the
                                  lamp with my left hand and the revolver in my right, I rushed outside just in time to see
                                  two animal figures roll over the edge of the verandah into the garden below. There they
                                  engaged in a terrific tug of war. Fortunately I was too concerned for Barney to be
                                  nervous. I quickly fired two shots from the revolver, which incidentally makes a noise like
                                  a cannon, and I must have startled the leopard for both animals, still locked together,
                                  disappeared over the edge of the terrace. I fired two more shots and in a few moments
                                  heard the leopard making a hurried exit through the dry leaves which lie thick under the
                                  wild fig tree just beyond the terrace. A few seconds later Barney appeared on the low
                                  terrace wall. I called his name but he made no move to come but stood with hanging
                                  head. In desperation I rushed out, felt blood on my hands when I touched him, so I
                                  picked him up bodily and carried him into the house. As I regained the verandah the boy
                                  appeared, club in hand, having been roused by the shots. He quickly grasped what had
                                  happened when he saw my blood saturated nightie. He fetched a bowl of water and a
                                  clean towel whilst I examined Barney’s wounds. These were severe, the worst being a
                                  gaping wound in his throat. I washed the gashes with a strong solution of pot permang
                                  and I am glad to say they are healing remarkably well though they are bound to leave
                                  scars. Fanny, very prudently, had taken no part in the fighting except for frenzied barking
                                  which she kept up all night. The shots had of course wakened Kate but she seemed
                                  more interested than alarmed and kept saying “Fanny bark bark, Mummy bang bang.
                                  Poor Barney lots of blood.”

                                  In the morning we inspected the tracks in the garden. There was a shallow furrow
                                  on the terrace where Barney and the leopard had dragged each other to and fro and
                                  claw marks on the trunk of the wild fig tree into which the leopard climbed after I fired the
                                  shots. The affair was of course a drama after the Africans’ hearts and several of our
                                  shamba boys called to see me next day to make sympathetic noises and discuss the
                                  affair.

                                  I went to bed early that night hoping that the leopard had been scared off for
                                  good but I must confess I shut all windows and doors. Alas for my hopes of a restful
                                  night. I had hardly turned down the lamp when the leopard started its terrifying grunting
                                  just under the bedroom windows. If only she would sniff around quietly I should not
                                  mind, but the noise is ghastly, something like the first sickening notes of a braying
                                  donkey, amplified here by the hills and the gorge which is only a stones throw from the
                                  bedroom. Barney was too sick to bark but Fanny barked loud enough for two and the more
                                  frantic she became the hungrier the leopard sounded. Kate of course woke up and this
                                  time she was frightened though I assured her that the noise was just a donkey having
                                  fun. Neither of us slept until dawn when the leopard returned to the hills. When we
                                  examined the tracks next morning we found that the leopard had been accompanied by
                                  a fair sized cub and that together they had prowled around the house, kitchen, and out
                                  houses, visiting especially the places to which the dogs had been during the day.
                                  As I feel I cannot bear many more of these nights, I am sending a note to the
                                  District Commissioner, Mbeya by the messenger who takes this letter to the post,
                                  asking him to send a game scout or an armed policeman to deal with the leopard.
                                  So don’t worry, for by the time this reaches you I feel sure this particular trouble
                                  will be over.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe 17th October 1937

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  More about the leopard I fear! My messenger returned from Mbeya to say that
                                  the District Officer was on safari so he had given the message to the Assistant District
                                  Officer who also apparently left on safari later without bothering to reply to my note, so
                                  there was nothing for me to do but to send for the village Nimrod and his muzzle loader
                                  and offer him a reward if he could frighten away or kill the leopard.

                                  The hunter, Laza, suggested that he should sleep at the house so I went to bed
                                  early leaving Laza and his two pals to make themselves comfortable on the living room
                                  floor by the fire. Laza was armed with a formidable looking muzzle loader, crammed I
                                  imagine with nuts and bolts and old rusty nails. One of his pals had a spear and the other
                                  a panga. This fellow was also in charge of the Petromax pressure lamp whose light was
                                  hidden under a packing case. I left the campaign entirely to Laza’s direction.
                                  As usual the leopard came at midnight stealing down from the direction of the
                                  kitchen and announcing its presence and position with its usual ghastly grunts. Suddenly
                                  pandemonium broke loose on the back verandah. I heard the roar of the muzzle loader
                                  followed by a vigourous tattoo beaten on an empty paraffin tin and I rushed out hoping
                                  to find the dead leopard. however nothing of the kind had happened except that the
                                  noise must have scared the beast because she did not return again that night. Next
                                  morning Laza solemnly informed me that, though he had shot many leopards in his day,
                                  this was no ordinary leopard but a “sheitani” (devil) and that as his gun was no good
                                  against witchcraft he thought he might as well retire from the hunt. Scared I bet, and I
                                  don’t blame him either.

                                  You can imagine my relief when a car rolled up that afternoon bringing Messers
                                  Stewart and Griffiths, two farmers who live about 15 miles away, between here and
                                  Mbeya. They had a note from the Assistant District Officer asking them to help me and
                                  they had come to set up a trap gun in the garden. That night the leopard sniffed all
                                  around the gun and I had the added strain of waiting for the bang and wondering what I
                                  should do if the beast were only wounded. I conjured up horrible visions of the two little
                                  totos trotting up the garden path with the early morning milk and being horribly mauled,
                                  but I needn’t have worried because the leopard was far too wily to be caught that way.
                                  Two more ghastly nights passed and then I had another visitor, a Dr Jackson of
                                  the Tsetse Department on safari in the District. He listened sympathetically to my story
                                  and left his shotgun and some SSG cartridges with me and instructed me to wait until the
                                  leopard was pretty close and blow its b—– head off. It was good of him to leave his
                                  gun. George always says there are three things a man should never lend, ‘His wife, his
                                  gun and his dog.’ (I think in that order!)I felt quite cheered by Dr Jackson’s visit and sent
                                  once again for Laza last night and arranged a real show down. In the afternoon I draped
                                  heavy blankets over the living room windows to shut out the light of the pressure lamp
                                  and the four of us, Laza and his two stooges and I waited up for the leopard. When we
                                  guessed by her grunts that she was somewhere between the kitchen and the back door
                                  we all rushed out, first the boy with the panga and the lamp, next Laza with his muzzle
                                  loader, then me with the shotgun followed closely by the boy with the spear. What a
                                  farce! The lamp was our undoing. We were blinded by the light and did not even
                                  glimpse the leopard which made off with a derisive grunt. Laza said smugly that he knew
                                  it was hopeless to try and now I feel tired and discouraged too.

                                  This morning I sent a runner to Mbeya to order the hotel taxi for tomorrow and I
                                  shall go to friends in Mbeya for a day or two and then on to Tukuyu where I shall stay
                                  with the Eustaces until George returns from Safari.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe 18th November 1937

                                  My darling Ann,

                                  Here we are back in our own home and how lovely it is to have Daddy back from
                                  safari. Thank you very much for your letter. I hope by now you have got mine telling you
                                  how very much I liked the beautiful tray cloth you made for my birthday. I bet there are
                                  not many little girls of five who can embroider as well as you do, darling. The boy,
                                  Matafari, washes and irons it so carefully and it looks lovely on the tea tray.

                                  Daddy and I had some fun last night. I was in bed and Daddy was undressing
                                  when we heard a funny scratching noise on the roof. I thought it was the leopard. Daddy
                                  quickly loaded his shotgun and ran outside. He had only his shirt on and he looked so
                                  funny. I grabbed the loaded revolver from the cupboard and ran after Dad in my nightie
                                  but after all the rush it was only your cat, Winnie, though I don’t know how she managed
                                  to make such a noise. We felt so silly, we laughed and laughed.

                                  Kate talks a lot now but in such a funny way you would laugh to her her. She
                                  hears the houseboys call me Memsahib so sometimes instead of calling me Mummy
                                  she calls me “Oompaab”. She calls the bedroom a ‘bippon’ and her little behind she
                                  calls her ‘sittendump’. She loves to watch Mandawi’s cattle go home along the path
                                  behind the kitchen. Joseph your donkey, always leads the cows. He has a lazy life now.
                                  I am glad you had such fun on Guy Fawkes Day. You will be sad to leave
                                  Plumstead but I am sure you will like going to England on the big ship with granny Kate.
                                  I expect you will start school when you get to England and I am sure you will find that
                                  fun.

                                  God bless my dear little girl. Lots of love from Daddy and Kate,
                                  and Mummy

                                  Mchewe 18th November 1937

                                  Hello George Darling,

                                  Thank you for your lovely drawing of Daddy shooting an elephant. Daddy says
                                  that the only thing is that you have drawn him a bit too handsome.

                                  I went onto the verandah a few minutes ago to pick a banana for Kate from the
                                  bunch hanging there and a big hornet flew out and stung my elbow! There are lots of
                                  them around now and those stinging flies too. Kate wears thick corduroy dungarees so
                                  that she will not get her fat little legs bitten. She is two years old now and is a real little
                                  pickle. She loves running out in the rain so I have ordered a pair of red Wellingtons and a
                                  tiny umbrella from a Nairobi shop for her Christmas present.

                                  Fanny’s puppies have their eyes open now and have very sharp little teeth.
                                  They love to nip each other. We are keeping the fiercest little one whom we call Paddy
                                  but are giving the others to friends. The coffee bushes are full of lovely white flowers
                                  and the bees and ants are very busy stealing their honey.

                                  Yesterday a troop of baboons came down the hill and Dad shot a big one to
                                  scare the others off. They are a nuisance because they steal the maize and potatoes
                                  from the native shambas and then there is not enough food for the totos.
                                  Dad and I are very proud of you for not making a fuss when you went to the
                                  dentist to have that tooth out.

                                  Bye bye, my fine little son.
                                  Three bags full of love from Kate, Dad and Mummy.

                                  Mchewe 12th February, 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  here is some news that will please you. George has been offered and has
                                  accepted a job as Forester at Mbulu in the Northern Province of Tanganyika. George
                                  would have preferred a job as Game Ranger, but though the Game Warden, Philip
                                  Teare, is most anxious to have him in the Game Department, there is no vacancy at
                                  present. Anyway if one crops up later, George can always transfer from one
                                  Government Department to another. Poor George, he hates the idea of taking a job. He
                                  says that hitherto he has always been his own master and he detests the thought of
                                  being pushed around by anyone.

                                  Now however he has no choice. Our capitol is almost exhausted and the coffee
                                  market shows no signs of improving. With three children and another on the way, he
                                  feels he simply must have a fixed income. I shall be sad to leave this little farm. I love
                                  our little home and we have been so very happy here, but my heart rejoices at the
                                  thought of overseas leave every thirty months. Now we shall be able to fetch Ann and
                                  George from England and in three years time we will all be together in Tanganyika once
                                  more.

                                  There is no sale for farms so we will just shut the house and keep on a very small
                                  labour force just to keep the farm from going derelict. We are eating our hens but will
                                  take our two dogs, Fanny and Paddy with us.

                                  One thing I shall be glad to leave is that leopard. She still comes grunting around
                                  at night but not as badly as she did before. I do not mind at all when George is here but
                                  until George was accepted for this forestry job I was afraid he might go back to the
                                  Diggings and I should once more be left alone to be cursed by the leopard’s attentions.
                                  Knowing how much I dreaded this George was most anxious to shoot the leopard and
                                  for weeks he kept his shotgun and a powerful torch handy at night.

                                  One night last week we woke to hear it grunting near the kitchen. We got up very
                                  quietly and whilst George loaded the shotgun with SSG, I took the torch and got the
                                  heavy revolver from the cupboard. We crept out onto the dark verandah where George
                                  whispered to me to not switch on the torch until he had located the leopard. It was pitch
                                  black outside so all he could do was listen intently. And then of course I spoilt all his
                                  plans. I trod on the dog’s tin bowl and made a terrific clatter! George ordered me to
                                  switch on the light but it was too late and the leopard vanished into the long grass of the
                                  Kalonga, grunting derisively, or so it sounded.

                                  She never comes into the clearing now but grunts from the hillside just above it.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mbulu 18th March, 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Journeys end at last. here we are at Mbulu, installed in our new quarters which are
                                  as different as they possibly could be from our own cosy little home at Mchewe. We
                                  live now, my dears, in one wing of a sort of ‘Beau Geste’ fort but I’ll tell you more about
                                  it in my next letter. We only arrived yesterday and have not had time to look around.
                                  This letter will tell you just about our trip from Mbeya.

                                  We left the farm in our little red Ford two seater with all our portable goods and
                                  chattels plus two native servants and the two dogs. Before driving off, George took one
                                  look at the flattened springs and declared that he would be surprised if we reached
                                  Mbeya without a breakdown and that we would never make Mbulu with the car so
                                  overloaded.

                                  However luck was with us. We reached Mbeya without mishap and at one of the
                                  local garages saw a sturdy used Ford V8 boxbody car for sale. The garage agreed to
                                  take our small car as part payment and George drew on our little remaining capitol for the
                                  rest. We spent that night in the house of the Forest Officer and next morning set out in
                                  comfort for the Northern Province of Tanganyika.

                                  I had done the journey from Dodoma to Mbeya seven years before so was
                                  familiar with the scenery but the road was much improved and the old pole bridges had
                                  been replaced by modern steel ones. Kate was as good as gold all the way. We
                                  avoided hotels and camped by the road and she found this great fun.
                                  The road beyond Dodoma was new to me and very interesting country, flat and
                                  dry and dusty, as little rain falls there. The trees are mostly thorn trees but here and there
                                  one sees a giant baobab, weird trees with fantastically thick trunks and fat squat branches
                                  with meagre foliage. The inhabitants of this area I found interesting though. They are
                                  called Wagogo and are a primitive people who ape the Masai in dress and customs
                                  though they are much inferior to the Masai in physique. They are also great herders of
                                  cattle which, rather surprisingly, appear to thrive in that dry area.

                                  The scenery alters greatly as one nears Babati, which one approaches by a high
                                  escarpment from which one has a wonderful view of the Rift Valley. Babati township
                                  appears to be just a small group of Indian shops and shabby native houses, but I
                                  believe there are some good farms in the area. Though the little township is squalid,
                                  there is a beautiful lake and grand mountains to please the eye. We stopped only long
                                  enough to fill up with petrol and buy some foodstuffs. Beyond Babati there is a tsetse
                                  fly belt and George warned our two native servants to see that no tsetse flies settled on
                                  the dogs.

                                  We stopped for the night in a little rest house on the road about 80 miles from
                                  Arusha where we were to spend a few days with the Forest Officer before going on to
                                  Mbulu. I enjoyed this section of the road very much because it runs across wide plains
                                  which are bounded on the West by the blue mountains of the Rift Valley wall. Here for
                                  the first time I saw the Masai on their home ground guarding their vast herds of cattle. I
                                  also saw their strange primitive hovels called Manyattas, with their thorn walled cattle
                                  bomas and lots of plains game – giraffe, wildebeest, ostriches and antelope. Kate was
                                  wildly excited and entranced with the game especially the giraffe which stood gazing
                                  curiously and unafraid of us, often within a few yards of the road.

                                  Finally we came across the greatest thrill of all, my first view of Mt Meru the extinct
                                  volcano about 16,000 feet high which towers over Arusha township. The approach to
                                  Arusha is through flourishing coffee plantations very different alas from our farm at Mchewe. George says that at Arusha coffee growing is still a paying proposition
                                  because here the yield of berry per acre is much higher than in the Southern highlands
                                  and here in the North the farmers have not such heavy transport costs as the railway runs
                                  from Arusha to the port at Tanga.

                                  We stayed overnight at a rather second rate hotel but the food was good and we
                                  had hot baths and a good nights rest. Next day Tom Lewis the Forest Officer, fetched
                                  us and we spent a few days camping in a tent in the Lewis’ garden having meals at their
                                  home. Both Tom and Lillian Lewis were most friendly. Tom lewis explained to George
                                  what his work in the Mbulu District was to be, and they took us camping in a Forest
                                  Reserve where Lillian and her small son David and Kate and I had a lovely lazy time
                                  amidst beautiful surroundings. Before we left for Mbulu, Lillian took me shopping to buy
                                  material for curtains for our new home. She described the Forest House at Mbulu to me
                                  and it sounded delightful but alas, when we reached Mbulu we discovered that the
                                  Assistant District Officer had moved into the Forest House and we were directed to the
                                  Fort or Boma. The night before we left Arusha for Mbulu it rained very heavily and the
                                  road was very treacherous and slippery due to the surface being of ‘black cotton’ soil
                                  which has the appearance and consistency of chocolate blancmange, after rain. To get to
                                  Mbulu we had to drive back in the direction of Dodoma for some 70 miles and then turn
                                  to the right and drive across plains to the Great Rift Valley Wall. The views from this
                                  escarpment road which climbs this wall are magnificent. At one point one looks down
                                  upon Lake Manyara with its brilliant white beaches of soda.

                                  The drive was a most trying one for George. We had no chains for the wheels
                                  and several times we stuck in the mud and our two houseboys had to put grass and
                                  branches under the wheels to stop them from spinning. Quite early on in the afternoon
                                  George gave up all hope of reaching Mbulu that day and planned to spend the night in
                                  a little bush rest camp at Karatu. However at one point it looked as though we would not
                                  even reach this resthouse for late afternoon found us properly bogged down in a mess
                                  of mud at the bottom of a long and very steep hill. In spite of frantic efforts on the part of
                                  George and the two boys, all now very wet and muddy, the heavy car remained stuck.
                                  Suddenly five Masai men appeared through the bushes beside the road. They
                                  were all tall and angular and rather terrifying looking to me. Each wore only a blanket
                                  knotted over one shoulder and all were armed with spears. They lined up by the side of
                                  the road and just looked – not hostile but simply aloof and supercilious. George greeted
                                  them and said in Ki-Swahili, “Help to push and I will reward you.” But they said nothing,
                                  just drawing back imperceptibly to register disgust at the mere idea of manual labour.
                                  Their expressions said quite clearly “A Masai is a warrior and does not soil his hands.”
                                  George then did something which startled them I think, as much as me. He
                                  plucked their spears from their hands one by one and flung them into the back of the
                                  boxbody. “Now push!” he said, “And when we are safely out of the mud you shall have
                                  your spears back.” To my utter astonishment the Masai seemed to applaud George’s
                                  action. I think they admire courage in a man more than anything else. They pushed with a
                                  will and soon we were roaring up the long steep slope. “I can’t stop here” quoth George
                                  as up and up we went. The Masai were in mad pursuit with their blankets streaming
                                  behind. They took a very steep path which was a shortcut to the top. They are certainly
                                  amazing athletes and reached the top at the same time as the car. Their route of course
                                  was shorter but much more steep, yet they came up without any sign of fatigue to claim
                                  their spears and the money which George handed out with a friendly grin. The Masai
                                  took the whole episode in good heart and we parted on the most friendly terms.

                                  After a rather chilly night in the three walled shack, we started on the last lap of our
                                  journey yesterday morning in bright weather and made the trip to Mbulu without incident.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mbulu 24th March, 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Mbulu is an attractive station but living in this rather romantic looking fort has many
                                  disadvantages. Our quarters make up one side of the fort which is built up around a
                                  hollow square. The buildings are single storied but very tall in the German manner and
                                  there is a tower on one corner from which the Union Jack flies. The tower room is our
                                  sitting room, and one has very fine views from the windows of the rolling country side.
                                  However to reach this room one has to climb a steep flight of cement steps from the
                                  court yard. Another disadvantage of this tower room is that there is a swarm of bees in
                                  the roof and the stray ones drift down through holes in the ceiling and buzz angrily
                                  against the window panes or fly around in a most menacing manner.

                                  Ours are the only private quarters in the Fort. Two other sides of the Fort are
                                  used as offices, storerooms and court room and the fourth side is simply a thick wall with
                                  battlements and loopholes and a huge iron shod double door of enormous thickness
                                  which is always barred at sunset when the flag is hauled down. Two Police Askari always
                                  remain in the Fort on guard at night. The effect from outside the whitewashed fort is very
                                  romantic but inside it is hardly homely and how I miss my garden at Mchewe and the
                                  grass and trees.

                                  We have no privacy downstairs because our windows overlook the bare
                                  courtyard which is filled with Africans patiently waiting to be admitted to the courtroom as
                                  witnesses or spectators. The outside windows which overlook the valley are heavily
                                  barred. I can only think that the Germans who built this fort must have been very scared
                                  of the local natives.

                                  Our rooms are hardly cosy and are furnished with typical heavy German pieces.
                                  We have a vast bleak bedroom, a dining room and an enormous gloomy kitchen in
                                  which meals for the German garrison were cooked. At night this kitchen is alive with
                                  gigantic rats but fortunately they do not seem to care for the other rooms. To crown
                                  everything owls hoot and screech at night on the roof.

                                  On our first day here I wandered outside the fort walls with Kate and came upon a
                                  neatly fenced plot enclosing the graves of about fifteen South African soldiers killed by
                                  the Germans in the 1914-18 war. I understand that at least one of theses soldiers died in
                                  the courtyard here. The story goes, that during the period in the Great War when this fort
                                  was occupied by a troop of South African Horse, a German named Siedtendorf
                                  appeared at the great barred door at night and asked to speak to the officer in command
                                  of the Troop. The officer complied with this request and the small shutter in the door was
                                  opened so that he could speak with the German. The German, however, had not come
                                  to speak. When he saw the exposed face of the officer, he fired, killing him, and
                                  escaped into the dark night. I had this tale on good authority but cannot vouch for it. I do
                                  know though, that there are two bullet holes in the door beside the shutter. An unhappy
                                  story to think about when George is away, as he is now, and the moonlight throws queer
                                  shadows in the court yard and the owls hoot.

                                  However though I find our quarters depressing, I like Mbulu itself very much. It is
                                  rolling country, treeless except for the plantations of the Forestry Dept. The land is very
                                  fertile in the watered valleys but the grass on hills and plains is cropped to the roots by
                                  the far too numerous cattle and goats. There are very few Europeans on the station, only
                                  Mr Duncan, the District Officer, whose wife and children recently left for England, the
                                  Assistant District Officer and his wife, a bachelor Veterinary Officer, a Road Foreman and
                                  ourselves, and down in the village a German with an American wife and an elderly
                                  Irishman whom I have not met. The Government officials have a communal vegetable
                                  garden in the valley below the fort which keeps us well supplied with green stuff. 

                                  Most afternoons George, Kate and I go for walks after tea. On Fridays there is a
                                  little ceremony here outside the fort. In the late afternoon a little procession of small
                                  native schoolboys, headed by a drum and penny whistle band come marching up the
                                  road to a tune which sounds like ‘Two lovely black eyes”. They form up below our tower
                                  and as the flag is lowered for the day they play ‘God save the King’, and then march off
                                  again. It is quite a cheerful little ceremony.

                                  The local Africans are a skinny lot and, I should say, a poor tribe. They protect
                                  themselves against the cold by wrapping themselves in cotton blankets or a strip of
                                  unbleached sheeting. This they drape over their heads, almost covering their faces and
                                  the rest is wrapped closely round their bodies in the manner of a shroud. A most
                                  depressing fashion. They live in very primitive comfortless houses. They simply make a
                                  hollow in the hillside and build a front wall of wattle and daub. Into this rude shelter at night
                                  go cattle and goats, men, women, and children.

                                  Mbulu village has the usual mud brick and wattle dukas and wattle and daub
                                  houses. The chief trader is a Goan who keeps a surprisingly good variety of tinned
                                  foodstuffs and also sells hardware and soft goods.

                                  The Europeans here have been friendly but as you will have noted there are
                                  only two other women on station and no children at all to be companions for Kate.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mbulu 20th June 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Here we are on Safari with George at Babati where we are occupying a rest
                                  house on the slopes of Ufiome Mountain. The slopes are a Forest Reserve and
                                  George is supervising the clearing of firebreaks in preparation for the dry weather. He
                                  goes off after a very early breakfast and returns home in the late afternoon so Kate and I
                                  have long lazy days.

                                  Babati is a pleasant spot and the resthouse is quite comfortable. It is about a mile
                                  from the village which is just the usual collection of small mud brick and corrugated iron
                                  Indian Dukas. There are a few settlers in the area growing coffee, or going in for mixed
                                  farming but I don’t think they are doing very well. The farm adjoining the rest house is
                                  owned by Lord Lovelace but is run by a manager.

                                  George says he gets enough exercise clambering about all day on the mountain,
                                  so Kate and I do our walking in the mornings when George is busy, and we all relax in
                                  the evenings when George returns from his field work. Kate’s favourite walk is to the big
                                  block of mtama (sorghum) shambas lower down the hill. There are huge swarms of tiny
                                  grain eating birds around waiting the chance to plunder the mtama, so the crops are
                                  watched from sunrise to sunset.

                                  Crude observation platforms have been erected for this purpose in the centre of
                                  each field and the women and the young boys of the family concerned, take it in turn to
                                  occupy the platform and scare the birds. Each watcher has a sling and uses clods of
                                  earth for ammunition. The clod is placed in the centre of the sling which is then whirled
                                  around at arms length. Suddenly one end of the sling is released and the clod of earth
                                  flies out and shatters against the mtama stalks. The sling makes a loud whip like crack and
                                  the noise is quite startling and very effective in keeping the birds at a safe distance.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Karatu 3rd July 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Still on safari you see! We left Babati ten days ago and passed through Mbulu
                                  on our way to this spot. We slept out of doors one night beside Lake Tiawa about eight
                                  miles from Mbulu. It was a peaceful spot and we enjoyed watching the reflection of the
                                  sunset on the lake and the waterhens and duck and pelicans settling down for the night.
                                  However it turned piercingly cold after sunset so we had an early supper and then all
                                  three of us lay down to sleep in the back of the boxbody (station wagon). It was a tight
                                  fit and a real case of ‘When Dad turns, we all turn.’

                                  Here at Karatu we are living in a grass hut with only three walls. It is rather sweet
                                  and looks like the setting for a Nativity Play. Kate and I share the only camp bed and
                                  George and the dogs sleep on the floor. The air here is very fresh and exhilarating and
                                  we all feel very fit. George is occupied all day supervising the cutting of firebreaks
                                  around existing plantations and the forest reserve of indigenous trees. Our camp is on
                                  the hillside and below us lie the fertile wheat lands of European farmers.

                                  They are mostly Afrikaners, the descendants of the Boer families who were
                                  invited by the Germans to settle here after the Boer War. Most of them are pro-British
                                  now and a few have called in here to chat to George about big game hunting. George
                                  gets on extremely well with them and recently attended a wedding where he had a
                                  lively time dancing at the reception. He likes the older people best as most are great
                                  individualists. One fine old man, surnamed von Rooyen, visited our camp. He is a Boer
                                  of the General Smuts type with spare figure and bearded face. George tells me he is a
                                  real patriarch with an enormous family – mainly sons. This old farmer fought against the
                                  British throughout the Boer War under General Smuts and again against the British in the
                                  German East Africa campaign when he was a scout and right hand man to Von Lettow. It
                                  is said that Von Lettow was able to stay in the field until the end of the Great War
                                  because he listened to the advise given to him by von Rooyen. However his dislike for
                                  the British does not extend to George as they have a mutual interest in big game
                                  hunting.

                                  Kate loves being on safari. She is now so accustomed to having me as her nurse
                                  and constant companion that I do not know how she will react to paid help. I shall have to
                                  get someone to look after her during my confinement in the little German Red Cross
                                  hospital at Oldeani.

                                  George has obtained permission from the District Commissioner, for Kate and
                                  me to occupy the Government Rest House at Oldeani from the end of July until the end
                                  of August when my baby is due. He will have to carry on with his field work but will join
                                  us at weekends whenever possible.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Karatu 12th July 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Not long now before we leave this camp. We have greatly enjoyed our stay
                                  here in spite of the very chilly earl mornings and the nights when we sit around in heavy
                                  overcoats until our early bed time.

                                  Last Sunday I persuaded George to take Kate and me to the famous Ngoro-
                                  Ngoro Crater. He was not very keen to do so because the road is very bumpy for
                                  anyone in my interesting condition but I feel so fit that I was most anxious to take this
                                  opportunity of seeing the enormous crater. We may never be in this vicinity again and in
                                  any case safari will not be so simple with a small baby.

                                  What a wonderful trip it was! The road winds up a steep escarpment from which
                                  one gets a glorious birds eye view of the plains of the Great Rift Valley far, far below.
                                  The crater is immense. There is a road which skirts the rim in places and one has quite
                                  startling views of the floor of the crater about two thousand feet below.

                                  A camp for tourists has just been built in a clearing in the virgin forest. It is most
                                  picturesque as the camp buildings are very neatly constructed log cabins with very high
                                  pitched thatched roofs. We spent about an hour sitting on the grass near the edge of the
                                  crater enjoying the sunshine and the sharp air and really awe inspiring view. Far below us
                                  in the middle of the crater was a small lake and we could see large herds of game
                                  animals grazing there but they were too far away to be impressive, even seen through
                                  George’s field glasses. Most appeared to be wildebeest and zebra but I also picked
                                  out buffalo. Much more exciting was my first close view of a wild elephant. George
                                  pointed him out to me as we approached the rest camp on the inward journey. He
                                  stood quietly under a tree near the road and did not seem to be disturbed by the car
                                  though he rolled a wary eye in our direction. On our return journey we saw him again at
                                  almost uncomfortably close quarters. We rounded a sharp corner and there stood the
                                  elephant, facing us and slap in the middle of the road. He was busily engaged giving
                                  himself a dust bath but spared time to give us an irritable look. Fortunately we were on a
                                  slight slope so George quickly switched off the engine and backed the car quietly round
                                  the corner. He got out of the car and loaded his rifle, just in case! But after he had finished
                                  his toilet the elephant moved off the road and we took our chance and passed without
                                  incident.

                                  One notices the steepness of the Ngoro-Ngoro road more on the downward
                                  journey than on the way up. The road is cut into the side of the mountain so that one has
                                  a steep slope on one hand and a sheer drop on the other. George told me that a lorry
                                  coming down the mountain was once charged from behind by a rhino. On feeling and
                                  hearing the bash from behind the panic stricken driver drove off down the mountain as
                                  fast as he dared and never paused until he reached level ground at the bottom of the
                                  mountain. There was no sign of the rhino so the driver got out to examine his lorry and
                                  found the rhino horn embedded in the wooden tail end of the lorry. The horn had been
                                  wrenched right off!

                                  Happily no excitement of that kind happened to us. I have yet to see a rhino.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Oldeani. 19th July 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Greetings from a lady in waiting! Kate and I have settled down comfortably in the
                                  new, solidly built Government Rest House which comprises one large living room and
                                  one large office with a connecting door. Outside there is a kitchen and a boys quarter.
                                  There are no resident Government officials here at Oldeani so the office is in use only
                                  when the District Officer from Mbulu makes his monthly visit. However a large Union
                                  Jack flies from a flagpole in the front of the building as a gentle reminder to the entirely
                                  German population of Oldeani that Tanganyika is now under British rule.

                                  There is quite a large community of German settlers here, most of whom are
                                  engaged in coffee farming. George has visited several of the farms in connection with his
                                  forestry work and says the coffee plantations look very promising indeed. There are also
                                  a few German traders in the village and there is a large boarding school for German
                                  children and also a very pleasant little hospital where I have arranged to have the baby.
                                  Right next door to the Rest House is a General Dealers Store run by a couple named
                                  Schnabbe. The shop is stocked with drapery, hardware, china and foodstuffs all
                                  imported from Germany and of very good quality. The Schnabbes also sell local farm
                                  produce, beautiful fresh vegetables, eggs and pure rich milk and farm butter. Our meat
                                  comes from a German butchery and it is a great treat to get clean, well cut meat. The
                                  sausages also are marvellous and in great variety.

                                  The butcher is an entertaining character. When he called round looking for custom I
                                  expected him to break out in a yodel any minute, as it was obvious from a glance that
                                  the Alps are his natural background. From under a green Tyrollean hat with feather,
                                  blooms a round beefy face with sparkling small eyes and such widely spaced teeth that
                                  one inevitably thinks of a garden rake. Enormous beefy thighs bulge from greasy
                                  lederhosen which are supported by the traditional embroidered braces. So far the
                                  butcher is the only cheery German, male or female, whom I have seen, and I have met
                                  most of the locals at the Schnabbe’s shop. Most of the men seem to have cultivated
                                  the grim Hitler look. They are all fanatical Nazis and one is usually greeted by a raised
                                  hand and Heil Hitler! All very theatrical. I always feel like crying in ringing tones ‘God
                                  Save the King’ or even ‘St George for England’. However the men are all very correct
                                  and courteous and the women friendly. The women all admire Kate and cry, “Ag, das
                                  kleine Englander.” She really is a picture with her rosy cheeks and huge grey eyes and
                                  golden curls. Kate is having a wonderful time playing with Manfried, the Scnabbe’s small
                                  son. Neither understands a word said by the other but that doesn’t seem to worry them.

                                  Before he left on safari, George took me to hospital for an examination by the
                                  nurse, Sister Marianne. She has not been long in the country and knows very little
                                  English but is determined to learn and carried on an animated, if rather quaint,
                                  conversation with frequent references to a pocket dictionary. She says I am not to worry
                                  because there is not doctor here. She is a very experienced midwife and anyway in an
                                  emergency could call on the old retired Veterinary Surgeon for assistance.
                                  I asked sister Marianne whether she knew of any German woman or girl who
                                  would look after Kate whilst I am in hospital and today a very top drawer German,
                                  bearing a strong likeness to ‘Little Willie’, called and offered the services of his niece who
                                  is here on a visit from Germany. I was rather taken aback and said, “Oh no Baron, your
                                  niece would not be the type I had in mind. I’m afraid I cannot pay much for a companion.”
                                  However the Baron was not to be discouraged. He told me that his niece is seventeen
                                  but looks twenty, that she is well educated and will make a cheerful companion. Her
                                  father wishes her to learn to speak English fluently and that is why the Baron wished her
                                  to come to me as a house daughter. As to pay, a couple of pounds a month for pocket
                                  money and her keep was all he had in mind. So with some misgivings I agreed to take
                                  the niece on as a companion as from 1st August.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Oldeani. 10th August 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Never a dull moment since my young companion arrived. She is a striking looking
                                  girl with a tall boyish figure and very short and very fine dark hair which she wears
                                  severely slicked back. She wears tweeds, no make up but has shiny rosy cheeks and
                                  perfect teeth – she also,inevitably, has a man friend and I have an uncomfortable
                                  suspicion that it is because of him that she was planted upon me. Upon second
                                  thoughts though, maybe it was because of her excessive vitality, or even because of
                                  her healthy appetite! The Baroness, I hear is in poor health and I can imagine that such
                                  abundant health and spirit must have been quite overpowering. The name is Ingeborg,
                                  but she is called Mouche, which I believe means Mouse. Someone in her family must
                                  have a sense of humour.

                                  Her English only needed practice and she now chatters fluently so that I know her
                                  background and views on life. Mouche’s father is a personal friend of Goering. He was
                                  once a big noise in the German Airforce but is now connected with the car industry and
                                  travels frequently and intensively in Europe and America on business. Mouche showed
                                  me some snap shots of her family and I must say they look prosperous and charming.
                                  Mouche tells me that her father wants her to learn to speak English fluently so that
                                  she can get a job with some British diplomat in Cairo. I had immediate thought that I
                                  might be nursing a future Mata Hari in my bosom, but this was immediately extinguished
                                  when Mouche remarked that her father would like her to marry an Englishman. However
                                  it seems that the mere idea revolts her. “Englishmen are degenerates who swill whisky
                                  all day.” I pointed out that she had met George, who was a true blue Englishman, but
                                  was nevertheless a fine physical specimen and certainly didn’t drink all day. Mouche
                                  replied that George is not an Englishman but a hunter, as though that set him apart.
                                  Mouche is an ardent Hitler fan and an enthusiastic member of the Hitler Youth
                                  Movement. The house resounds with Hitler youth songs and when she is not singing,
                                  her gramophone is playing very stirring marching songs. I cannot understand a word,
                                  which is perhaps as well. Every day she does the most strenuous exercises watched
                                  with envy by me as my proportions are now those of a circus Big Top. Mouche eats a
                                  fantastic amount of meat and I feel it is a blessing that she is much admired by our
                                  Tyrollean butcher who now delivers our meat in person and adds as a token of his
                                  admiration some extra sausages for Mouche.

                                  I must confess I find her stimulating company as George is on safari most of the
                                  time and my evenings otherwise would be lonely. I am a little worried though about
                                  leaving Kate here with Mouche when I go to hospital. The dogs and Kate have not taken
                                  to her. I am trying to prepare Kate for the separation but she says, “She’s not my
                                  mummy. You are my dear mummy, and I want you, I want you.” George has got
                                  permission from the Provincial Forestry Officer to spend the last week of August here at
                                  the Rest House with me and I only hope that the baby will be born during that time.
                                  Kate adores her dad and will be perfectly happy to remain here with him.

                                  One final paragraph about Mouche. I thought all German girls were domesticated
                                  but not Mouche. I have Kesho-Kutwa here with me as cook and I have engaged a local
                                  boy to do the laundry. I however expected Mouche would take over making the
                                  puddings and pastry but she informed me that she can only bake a chocolate cake and
                                  absolutely nothing else. She said brightly however that she would do the mending. As
                                  there is none for her to do, she has rescued a large worn handkerchief of George’s and
                                  sits with her feet up listening to stirring gramophone records whilst she mends the
                                  handkerchief with exquisite darning.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Oldeani. 20th August 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Just after I had posted my last letter I received what George calls a demi official
                                  letter from the District Officer informing me that I would have to move out of the Rest
                                  House for a few days as the Governor and his hangers on would be visiting Oldeani
                                  and would require the Rest House. Fortunately George happened to be here for a few
                                  hours and he arranged for Kate and Mouche and me to spend a few days at the
                                  German School as borders. So here I am at the school having a pleasant and restful
                                  time and much entertained by all the goings on.

                                  The school buildings were built with funds from Germany and the school is run on
                                  the lines of a contemporary German school. I think the school gets a grant from the
                                  Tanganyika Government towards running expenses, but I am not sure. The school hall is
                                  dominated by a more than life sized oil painting of Adolf Hitler which, at present, is
                                  flanked on one side by the German Flag and on the other by the Union Jack. I cannot
                                  help feeling that the latter was put up today for the Governor’s visit today.
                                  The teachers are very amiable. We all meet at mealtimes, and though few of the
                                  teachers speak English, the ones who do are anxious to chatter. The headmaster is a
                                  scholarly man but obviously anti-British. He says he cannot understand why so many
                                  South Africans are loyal to Britain – or rather to England. “They conquered your country
                                  didn’t they?” I said that that had never occurred to me and that anyway I was mainly of
                                  Scots descent and that loyalty to the crown was natural to me. “But the English
                                  conquered the Scots and yet you are loyal to England. That I cannot understand.” “Well I
                                  love England,” said I firmly, ”and so do all British South Africans.” Since then we have
                                  stuck to English literature. Shakespeare, Lord Byron and Galsworthy seem to be the
                                  favourites and all, thank goodness, make safe topics for conversation.
                                  Mouche is in her element but Kate and I do not enjoy the food which is typically
                                  German and consists largely of masses of fat pork and sauerkraut and unfamiliar soups. I
                                  feel sure that the soup at lunch today had blobs of lemon curd in it! I also find most
                                  disconcerting the way that everyone looks at me and says, “Bon appetite”, with much
                                  smiling and nodding so I have to fight down my nausea and make a show of enjoying
                                  the meals.

                                  The teacher whose room adjoins mine is a pleasant woman and I take my
                                  afternoon tea with her. She, like all the teachers, has a large framed photo of Hitler on her
                                  wall flanked by bracket vases of fresh flowers. One simply can’t get away from the man!
                                  Even in the dormitories each child has a picture of Hitler above the bed. Hitler accepting
                                  flowers from a small girl, or patting a small boy on the head. Even the children use the
                                  greeting ‘Heil Hitler’. These German children seem unnaturally prim when compared with
                                  my cheerful ex-pupils in South Africa but some of them are certainly very lovely to look
                                  at.

                                  Tomorrow Mouche, Kate and I return to our quarters in the Rest House and in a
                                  few days George will join us for a week.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  Oldeani Hospital. 9th September 1938

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  You will all be delighted to hear that we have a second son, whom we have
                                  named John. He is a darling, so quaint and good. He looks just like a little old man with a
                                  high bald forehead fringed around the edges with a light brown fluff. George and I call
                                  him Johnny Jo because he has a tiny round mouth and a rather big nose and reminds us
                                  of A.A.Milne’s ‘Jonathan Jo has a mouth like an O’ , but Kate calls him, ‘My brother John’.
                                  George was not here when he was born on September 5th, just two minutes
                                  before midnight. He left on safari on the morning of the 4th and, of course, that very night
                                  the labour pains started. Fortunately Kate was in bed asleep so Mouche walked with
                                  me up the hill to the hospital where I was cheerfully received by Sister Marianne who
                                  had everything ready for the confinement. I was lucky to have such an experienced
                                  midwife because this was a breech birth and sister had to manage single handed. As
                                  there was no doctor present I was not allowed even a sniff of anaesthetic. Sister slaved
                                  away by the light of a pressure lamp endeavouring to turn the baby having first shoved
                                  an inverted baby bath under my hips to raise them.

                                  What a performance! Sister Marianne was very much afraid that she might not be
                                  able to save the baby and great was our relief when at last she managed to haul him out
                                  by the feet. One slap and the baby began to cry without any further attention so Sister
                                  wrapped him up in a blanket and took Johnny to her room for the night. I got very little
                                  sleep but was so thankful to have the ordeal over that I did not mind even though I
                                  heard a hyaena cackling and calling under my window in a most evil way.
                                  When Sister brought Johnny to me in the early morning I stared in astonishment.
                                  Instead of dressing him in one of his soft Viyella nighties, she had dressed him in a short
                                  sleeved vest of knitted cotton with a cotton cloth swayed around his waist sarong
                                  fashion. When I protested, “But Sister why is the baby not dressed in his own clothes?”
                                  She answered firmly, “I find it is not allowed. A baby’s clotheses must be boiled and I
                                  cannot boil clotheses of wool therefore your baby must wear the clotheses of the Red
                                  Cross.”

                                  It was the same with the bedding. Poor Johnny lies all day in a deep wicker
                                  basket with a detachable calico lining. There is no pillow under his head but a vast kind of
                                  calico covered pillow is his only covering. There is nothing at all cosy and soft round my
                                  poor baby. I said crossly to the Sister, “As every thing must be so sterile, I wonder you
                                  don’t boil me too.” This she ignored.

                                  When my message reached George he dashed back to visit us. Sister took him
                                  first to see the baby and George was astonished to see the baby basket covered by a
                                  sheet. “She has the poor little kid covered up like a bloody parrot,” he told me. So I
                                  asked him to go at once to buy a square of mosquito netting to replace the sheet.
                                  Kate is quite a problem. She behaves like an Angel when she is here in my
                                  room but is rebellious when Sister shoos her out. She says she “Hates the Nanny”
                                  which is what she calls Mouche. Unfortunately it seems that she woke before midnight
                                  on the night Johnny Jo was born to find me gone and Mouche in my bed. According to
                                  Mouche, Kate wept all night and certainly when she visited me in the early morning
                                  Kate’s face was puffy with crying and she clung to me crying “Oh my dear mummy, why
                                  did you go away?” over and over again. Sister Marianne was touched and suggested
                                  that Mouche and Kate should come to the hospital as boarders as I am the only patient
                                  at present and there is plenty of room. Luckily Kate does not seem at all jealous of the
                                  baby and it is a great relief to have here here under my eye.

                                  Eleanor.

                                  #6264
                                  TracyTracy
                                  Participant

                                    From Tanganyika with Love

                                    continued  ~ part 5

                                    With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                    Chunya 16th December 1936

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Since last I wrote I have visited Chunya and met several of the diggers wives.
                                    On the whole I have been greatly disappointed because there is nothing very colourful
                                    about either township or women. I suppose I was really expecting something more like
                                    the goldrush towns and women I have so often seen on the cinema screen.
                                    Chunya consists of just the usual sun-dried brick Indian shops though there are
                                    one or two double storied buildings. Most of the life in the place centres on the
                                    Goldfields Hotel but we did not call there. From the store opposite I could hear sounds
                                    of revelry though it was very early in the afternoon. I saw only one sight which was quite
                                    new to me, some elegantly dressed African women, with high heels and lipsticked
                                    mouths teetered by on their way to the silk store. “Native Tarts,” said George in answer
                                    to my enquiry.

                                    Several women have called on me and when I say ‘called’ I mean called. I have
                                    grown so used to going without stockings and wearing home made dresses that it was
                                    quite a shock to me to entertain these ladies dressed to the nines in smart frocks, silk
                                    stockings and high heeled shoes, handbags, makeup and whatnot. I feel like some
                                    female Rip van Winkle. Most of the women have a smart line in conversation and their
                                    talk and views on life would make your nice straight hair curl Mummy. They make me feel
                                    very unsophisticated and dowdy but George says he has a weakness for such types
                                    and I am to stay exactly as I am. I still do not use any makeup. George says ‘It’s all right
                                    for them. They need it poor things, you don’t.” Which, though flattering, is hardly true.
                                    I prefer the men visitors, though they also are quite unlike what I had expected
                                    diggers to be. Those whom George brings home are all well educated and well
                                    groomed and I enjoy listening to their discussion of the world situation, sport and books.
                                    They are extremely polite to me and gentle with the children though I believe that after a
                                    few drinks at the pub tempers often run high. There were great arguments on the night
                                    following the abdication of Edward VIII. Not that the diggers were particularly attached to
                                    him as a person, but these men are all great individualists and believe in freedom of
                                    choice. George, rather to my surprise, strongly supported Edward. I did not.

                                    Many of the diggers have wireless sets and so we keep up to date with the
                                    news. I seldom leave camp. I have my hands full with the three children during the day
                                    and, even though Janey is a reliable ayah, I would not care to leave the children at night
                                    in these grass roofed huts. Having experienced that fire on the farm, I know just how
                                    unlikely it would be that the children would be rescued in time in case of fire. The other
                                    women on the diggings think I’m crazy. They leave their children almost entirely to ayahs
                                    and I must confess that the children I have seen look very well and happy. The thing is
                                    that I simply would not enjoy parties at the hotel or club, miles away from the children
                                    and I much prefer to stay at home with a book.

                                    I love hearing all about the parties from George who likes an occasional ‘boose
                                    up’ with the boys and is terribly popular with everyone – not only the British but with the
                                    Germans, Scandinavians and even the Afrikaans types. One Afrikaans woman said “Jou
                                    man is ‘n man, al is hy ‘n Engelsman.” Another more sophisticated woman said, “George
                                    is a handsome devil. Aren’t you scared to let him run around on his own?” – but I’m not. I
                                    usually wait up for George with sandwiches and something hot to drink and that way I
                                    get all the news red hot.

                                    There is very little gold coming in. The rains have just started and digging is
                                    temporarily at a standstill. It is too wet for dry blowing and not yet enough water for
                                    panning and sluicing. As this camp is some considerable distance from the claims, all I see of the process is the weighing of the daily taking of gold dust and tiny nuggets.
                                    Unless our luck changes I do not think we will stay on here after John Molteno returns.
                                    George does not care for the life and prefers a more constructive occupation.
                                    Ann and young George still search optimistically for gold. We were all saddened
                                    last week by the death of Fanny, our bull terrier. She went down to the shopping centre
                                    with us and we were standing on the verandah of a store when a lorry passed with its
                                    canvas cover flapping. This excited Fanny who rushed out into the street and the back
                                    wheel of the lorry passed right over her, killing her instantly. Ann was very shocked so I
                                    soothed her by telling her that Fanny had gone to Heaven. When I went to bed that
                                    night I found Ann still awake and she asked anxiously, “Mummy, do you think God
                                    remembered to give Fanny her bone tonight?”

                                    Much love to all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Itewe, Chunya 23rd December 1936

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Your Christmas parcel arrived this morning. Thank you very much for all the
                                    clothing for all of us and for the lovely toys for the children. George means to go hunting
                                    for a young buffalo this afternoon so that we will have some fresh beef for Christmas for
                                    ourselves and our boys and enough for friends too.

                                    I had a fright this morning. Ann and Georgie were, as usual, searching for gold
                                    whilst I sat sewing in the living room with Kate toddling around. She wandered through
                                    the curtained doorway into the store and I heard her playing with the paraffin pump. At
                                    first it did not bother me because I knew the tin was empty but after ten minutes or so I
                                    became irritated by the noise and went to stop her. Imagine my horror when I drew the
                                    curtain aside and saw my fat little toddler fiddling happily with the pump whilst, curled up
                                    behind the tin and clearly visible to me lay the largest puffadder I have ever seen.
                                    Luckily I acted instinctively and scooped Kate up from behind and darted back into the
                                    living room without disturbing the snake. The houseboy and cook rushed in with sticks
                                    and killed the snake and then turned the whole storeroom upside down to make sure
                                    there were no more.

                                    I have met some more picturesque characters since I last wrote. One is a man
                                    called Bishop whom George has known for many years having first met him in the
                                    Congo. I believe he was originally a sailor but for many years he has wandered around
                                    Central Africa trying his hand at trading, prospecting, a bit of elephant hunting and ivory
                                    poaching. He is now keeping himself by doing ‘Sign Writing”. Bish is a gentle and
                                    dignified personality. When we visited his camp he carefully dusted a seat for me and
                                    called me ‘Marm’, quite ye olde world. The only thing is he did spit.

                                    Another spitter is the Frenchman in a neighbouring camp. He is in bed with bad
                                    rheumatism and George has been going across twice a day to help him and cheer him
                                    up. Once when George was out on the claim I went across to the Frenchman’s camp in
                                    response to an SOS, but I think he was just lonely. He showed me snapshots of his
                                    two daughters, lovely girls and extremely smart, and he chatted away telling me his life
                                    history. He punctuated his remarks by spitting to right and left of the bed, everywhere in
                                    fact, except actually at me.

                                    George took me and the children to visit a couple called Bert and Hilda Farham.
                                    They have a small gold reef which is worked by a very ‘Heath Robinson’ type of
                                    machinery designed and erected by Bert who is reputed to be a clever engineer though
                                    eccentric. He is rather a handsome man who always looks very spruce and neat and
                                    wears a Captain Kettle beard. Hilda is from Johannesburg and quite a character. She
                                    has a most generous figure and literally masses of beetroot red hair, but she also has a
                                    warm deep voice and a most generous disposition. The Farhams have built
                                    themselves a more permanent camp than most. They have a brick cottage with proper
                                    doors and windows and have made it attractive with furniture contrived from petrol
                                    boxes. They have no children but Hilda lavishes a great deal of affection on a pet
                                    monkey. Sometimes they do quite well out of their gold and then they have a terrific
                                    celebration at the Club or Pub and Hilda has an orgy of shopping. At other times they
                                    are completely broke but Hilda takes disasters as well as triumphs all in her stride. She
                                    says, “My dear, when we’re broke we just live on tea and cigarettes.”

                                    I have met a young woman whom I would like as a friend. She has a dear little
                                    baby, but unfortunately she has a very wet husband who is also a dreadful bore. I can’t
                                    imagine George taking me to their camp very often. When they came to visit us George
                                    just sat and smoked and said,”Oh really?” to any remark this man made until I felt quite
                                    hysterical. George looks very young and fit and the children are lively and well too. I ,
                                    however, am definitely showing signs of wear and tear though George says,
                                    “Nonsense, to me you look the same as you always did.” This I may say, I do not
                                    regard as a compliment to the young Eleanor.

                                    Anyway, even though our future looks somewhat unsettled, we are all together
                                    and very happy.

                                    With love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Itewe, Chunya 30th December 1936

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    We had a very cheery Christmas. The children loved the toys and are so proud
                                    of their new clothes. They wore them when we went to Christmas lunch to the
                                    Cresswell-Georges. The C-Gs have been doing pretty well lately and they have a
                                    comfortable brick house and a large wireless set. The living room was gaily decorated
                                    with bought garlands and streamers and balloons. We had an excellent lunch cooked by
                                    our ex cook Abel who now works for the Cresswell-Georges. We had turkey with
                                    trimmings and plum pudding followed by nuts and raisons and chocolates and sweets
                                    galore. There was also a large variety of drinks including champagne!

                                    There were presents for all of us and, in addition, Georgie and Ann each got a
                                    large tin of chocolates. Kate was much admired. She was a picture in her new party frock
                                    with her bright hair and rosy cheeks. There were other guests beside ourselves and
                                    they were already there having drinks when we arrived. Someone said “What a lovely
                                    child!” “Yes” said George with pride, “She’s a Marie Stopes baby.” “Truby King!” said I
                                    quickly and firmly, but too late to stop the roar of laughter.

                                    Our children played amicably with the C-G’s three, but young George was
                                    unusually quiet and surprised me by bringing me his unopened tin of chocolates to keep
                                    for him. Normally he is a glutton for sweets. I might have guessed he was sickening for
                                    something. That night he vomited and had diarrhoea and has had an upset tummy and a
                                    slight temperature ever since.

                                    Janey is also ill. She says she has malaria and has taken to her bed. I am dosing
                                    her with quinine and hope she will soon be better as I badly need her help. Not only is
                                    young George off his food and peevish but Kate has a cold and Ann sore eyes and
                                    they all want love and attention. To complicate things it has been raining heavily and I
                                    must entertain the children indoors.

                                    Eleanor.

                                    Itewe, Chunya 19th January 1937

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    So sorry I have not written before but we have been in the wars and I have had neither
                                    the time nor the heart to write. However the worst is now over. Young George and
                                    Janey are both recovering from Typhoid Fever. The doctor had Janey moved to the
                                    native hospital at Chunya but I nursed young George here in the camp.

                                    As I told you young George’s tummy trouble started on Christmas day. At first I
                                    thought it was only a protracted bilious attack due to eating too much unaccustomed rich
                                    food and treated him accordingly but when his temperature persisted I thought that the
                                    trouble might be malaria and kept him in bed and increased the daily dose of quinine.
                                    He ate less and less as the days passed and on New Years Day he seemed very
                                    weak and his stomach tender to the touch.

                                    George fetched the doctor who examined small George and said he had a very
                                    large liver due no doubt to malaria. He gave the child injections of emertine and quinine
                                    and told me to give young George frequent and copious drinks of water and bi-carb of
                                    soda. This was more easily said than done. Young George refused to drink this mixture
                                    and vomited up the lime juice and water the doctor had suggested as an alternative.
                                    The doctor called every day and gave George further injections and advised me
                                    to give him frequent sips of water from a spoon. After three days the child was very
                                    weak and weepy but Dr Spiers still thought he had malaria. During those anxious days I
                                    also worried about Janey who appeared to be getting worse rather that better and on
                                    January the 3rd I asked the doctor to look at her. The next thing I knew, the doctor had
                                    put Janey in his car and driven her off to hospital. When he called next morning he
                                    looked very grave and said he wished to talk to my husband. I said that George was out
                                    on the claim but if what he wished to say concerned young George’s condition he might
                                    just as well tell me.

                                    With a good deal of reluctance Dr Spiers then told me that Janey showed all the
                                    symptoms of Typhoid Fever and that he was very much afraid that young George had
                                    contracted it from her. He added that George should be taken to the Mbeya Hospital
                                    where he could have the professional nursing so necessary in typhoid cases. I said “Oh
                                    no,I’d never allow that. The child had never been away from his family before and it
                                    would frighten him to death to be sick and alone amongst strangers.” Also I was sure that
                                    the fifty mile drive over the mountains in his weak condition would harm him more than
                                    my amateur nursing would. The doctor returned to the camp that afternoon to urge
                                    George to send our son to hospital but George staunchly supported my argument that
                                    young George would stand a much better chance of recovery if we nursed him at home.
                                    I must say Dr Spiers took our refusal very well and gave young George every attention
                                    coming twice a day to see him.

                                    For some days the child was very ill. He could not keep down any food or liquid
                                    in any quantity so all day long, and when he woke at night, I gave him a few drops of
                                    water at a time from a teaspoon. His only nourishment came from sucking Macintosh’s
                                    toffees. Young George sweated copiously especially at night when it was difficult to
                                    change his clothes and sponge him in the draughty room with the rain teeming down
                                    outside. I think I told you that the bedroom is a sort of shed with only openings in the wall
                                    for windows and doors, and with one wall built only a couple of feet high leaving a six
                                    foot gap for air and light. The roof leaked and the damp air blew in but somehow young
                                    George pulled through.

                                    Only when he was really on the mend did the doctor tell us that whilst he had
                                    been attending George, he had also been called in to attend to another little boy of the same age who also had typhoid. He had been called in too late and the other little boy,
                                    an only child, had died. Young George, thank God, is convalescent now, though still on a
                                    milk diet. He is cheerful enough when he has company but very peevish when left
                                    alone. Poor little lad, he is all hair, eyes, and teeth, or as Ann says” Georgie is all ribs ribs
                                    now-a-days Mummy.” He shares my room, Ann and Kate are together in the little room.
                                    Anyway the doctor says he should be up and around in about a week or ten days time.
                                    We were all inoculated against typhoid on the day the doctor made the diagnosis
                                    so it is unlikely that any of us will develop it. Dr Spiers was most impressed by Ann’s
                                    unconcern when she was inoculated. She looks gentle and timid but has always been
                                    very brave. Funny thing when young George was very ill he used to wail if I left the
                                    room, but now that he is convalescent he greatly prefers his dad’s company. So now I
                                    have been able to take the girls for walks in the late afternoons whilst big George
                                    entertains small George. This he does with the minimum of effort, either he gets out
                                    cartons of ammunition with which young George builds endless forts, or else he just sits
                                    beside the bed and cleans one of his guns whilst small George watches with absorbed
                                    attention.

                                    The Doctor tells us that Janey is also now convalescent. He says that exhusband
                                    Abel has been most attentive and appeared daily at the hospital with a tray of
                                    food that made his, the doctor’s, mouth water. All I dare say, pinched from Mrs
                                    Cresswell-George.

                                    I’ll write again soon. Lots of love to all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Chunya 29th January 1937

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Georgie is up and about but still tires very easily. At first his legs were so weak
                                    that George used to carry him around on his shoulders. The doctor says that what the
                                    child really needs is a long holiday out of the Tropics so that Mrs Thomas’ offer, to pay all
                                    our fares to Cape Town as well as lending us her seaside cottage for a month, came as
                                    a Godsend. Luckily my passport is in order. When George was in Mbeya he booked
                                    seats for the children and me on the first available plane. We will fly to Broken Hill and go
                                    on to Cape Town from there by train.

                                    Ann and George are wildly thrilled at the idea of flying but I am not. I remember
                                    only too well how airsick I was on the old Hannibal when I flew home with the baby Ann.
                                    I am longing to see you all and it will be heaven to give the children their first seaside
                                    holiday.

                                    I mean to return with Kate after three months but, if you will have him, I shall leave
                                    George behind with you for a year. You said you would all be delighted to have Ann so
                                    I do hope you will also be happy to have young George. Together they are no trouble
                                    at all. They amuse themselves and are very independent and loveable.
                                    George and I have discussed the matter taking into consideration the letters from
                                    you and George’s Mother on the subject. If you keep Ann and George for a year, my
                                    mother-in-law will go to Cape Town next year and fetch them. They will live in England
                                    with her until they are fit enough to return to the Tropics. After the children and I have left
                                    on this holiday, George will be able to move around and look for a job that will pay
                                    sufficiently to enable us to go to England in a few years time to fetch our children home.
                                    We both feel very sad at the prospect of this parting but the children’s health
                                    comes before any other consideration. I hope Kate will stand up better to the Tropics.
                                    She is plump and rosy and could not look more bonny if she lived in a temperate
                                    climate.

                                    We should be with you in three weeks time!

                                    Very much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Broken Hill, N Rhodesia 11th February 1937

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Well here we are safe and sound at the Great Northern Hotel, Broken Hill, all
                                    ready to board the South bound train tonight.

                                    We were still on the diggings on Ann’s birthday, February 8th, when George had
                                    a letter from Mbeya to say that our seats were booked on the plane leaving Mbeya on
                                    the 10th! What a rush we had packing up. Ann was in bed with malaria so we just
                                    bundled her up in blankets and set out in John Molteno’s car for the farm. We arrived that
                                    night and spent the next day on the farm sorting things out. Ann and George wanted to
                                    take so many of their treasures and it was difficult for them to make a small selection. In
                                    the end young George’s most treasured possession, his sturdy little boots, were left
                                    behind.

                                    Before leaving home on the morning of the tenth I took some snaps of Ann and
                                    young George in the garden and one of them with their father. He looked so sad. After
                                    putting us on the plane, George planned to go to the fishing camp for a day or two
                                    before returning to the empty house on the farm.

                                    John Molteno returned from the Cape by plane just before we took off, so he
                                    will take over the running of his claims once more. I told John that I dreaded the plane trip
                                    on account of air sickness so he gave me two pills which I took then and there. Oh dear!
                                    How I wished later that I had not done so. We had an extremely bumpy trip and
                                    everyone on the plane was sick except for small George who loved every moment.
                                    Poor Ann had a dreadful time but coped very well and never complained. I did not
                                    actually puke until shortly before we landed at Broken Hill but felt dreadfully ill all the way.
                                    Kate remained rosy and cheerful almost to the end. She sat on my lap throughout the
                                    trip because, being under age, she travelled as baggage and was not entitled to a seat.
                                    Shortly before we reached Broken Hill a smartly dressed youngish man came up
                                    to me and said, “You look so poorly, please let me take the baby, I have children of my
                                    own and know how to handle them.” Kate made no protest and off they went to the
                                    back of the plane whilst I tried to relax and concentrate on not getting sick. However,
                                    within five minutes the man was back. Kate had been thoroughly sick all over his collar
                                    and jacket.

                                    I took Kate back on my lap and then was violently sick myself, so much so that
                                    when we touched down at Broken Hill I was unable to speak to the Immigration Officer.
                                    He was so kind. He sat beside me until I got my diaphragm under control and then
                                    drove me up to the hotel in his own car.

                                    We soon recovered of course and ate a hearty dinner. This morning after
                                    breakfast I sallied out to look for a Bank where I could exchange some money into
                                    Rhodesian and South African currency and for the Post Office so that I could telegraph
                                    to George and to you. What a picnic that trip was! It was a terribly hot day and there was
                                    no shade. By the time we had done our chores, the children were hot, and cross, and
                                    tired and so indeed was I. As I had no push chair for Kate I had to carry her and she is
                                    pretty heavy for eighteen months. George, who is still not strong, clung to my free arm
                                    whilst Ann complained bitterly that no one was helping her.

                                    Eventually Ann simply sat down on the pavement and declared that she could
                                    not go another step, whereupon George of course decided that he also had reached his
                                    limit and sat down too. Neither pleading no threats would move them so I had to resort
                                    to bribery and had to promise that when we reached the hotel they could have cool
                                    drinks and ice-cream. This promise got the children moving once more but I am determined that nothing will induce me to stir again until the taxi arrives to take us to the
                                    station.

                                    This letter will go by air and will reach you before we do. How I am longing for
                                    journeys end.

                                    With love to you all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Leaving home 10th February 1937,  George Gilman Rushby with Ann and Georgie (Mike) Rushby:

                                    George Rushby Ann and Georgie

                                    NOTE
                                    We had a very warm welcome to the family home at Plumstead Cape Town.
                                    After ten days with my family we moved to Hout Bay where Mrs Thomas lent us her
                                    delightful seaside cottage. She also provided us with two excellent maids so I had
                                    nothing to do but rest and play on the beach with the children.

                                    After a month at the sea George had fully recovered his health though not his
                                    former gay spirits. After another six months with my parents I set off for home with Kate,
                                    leaving Ann and George in my parent’s home under the care of my elder sister,
                                    Marjorie.

                                    One or two incidents during that visit remain clearly in my memory. Our children
                                    had never met elderly people and were astonished at the manifestations of age. One
                                    morning an elderly lady came around to collect church dues. She was thin and stooped
                                    and Ann surveyed her with awe. She turned to me with a puzzled expression and
                                    asked in her clear voice, “Mummy, why has that old lady got a moustache – oh and a
                                    beard?’ The old lady in question was very annoyed indeed and said, “What a rude little
                                    girl.” Ann could not understand this, she said, “But Mummy, I only said she had a
                                    moustache and a beard and she has.” So I explained as best I could that when people
                                    have defects of this kind they are hurt if anyone mentions them.

                                    A few days later a strange young woman came to tea. I had been told that she
                                    had a most disfiguring birthmark on her cheek and warned Ann that she must not
                                    comment on it. Alas! with the kindest intentions Ann once again caused me acute
                                    embarrassment. The young woman was hardly seated when Ann went up to her and
                                    gently patted the disfiguring mark saying sweetly, “Oh, I do like this horrible mark on your
                                    face.”

                                    I remember also the afternoon when Kate and George were christened. My
                                    mother had given George a white silk shirt for the occasion and he wore it with intense
                                    pride. Kate was baptised first without incident except that she was lost in admiration of a
                                    gold bracelet given her that day by her Godmother and exclaimed happily, “My
                                    bangle, look my bangle,” throughout the ceremony. When George’s turn came the
                                    clergyman held his head over the font and poured water on George’s forehead. Some
                                    splashed on his shirt and George protested angrily, “Mum, he has wet my shirt!” over
                                    and over again whilst I led him hurriedly outside.

                                    My last memory of all is at the railway station. The time had come for Kate and
                                    me to get into our compartment. My sisters stood on the platform with Ann and George.
                                    Ann was resigned to our going, George was not so, at the last moment Sylvia, my
                                    younger sister, took him off to see the engine. The whistle blew and I said good-bye to
                                    my gallant little Ann. “Mummy”, she said urgently to me, “Don’t forget to wave to
                                    George.”

                                    And so I waved good-bye to my children, never dreaming that a war would
                                    intervene and it would be eight long years before I saw them again.

                                    #6263
                                    TracyTracy
                                    Participant

                                      From Tanganyika with Love

                                      continued  ~ part 4

                                      With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 31st January 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Life is very quiet just now. Our neighbours have left and I miss them all especially
                                      Joni who was always a great bearer of news. We also grew fond of his Swedish
                                      brother-in-law Max, whose loud ‘Hodi’ always brought a glad ‘Karibu’ from us. His wife,
                                      Marion, I saw less often. She is not strong and seldom went visiting but has always
                                      been friendly and kind and ready to share her books with me.

                                      Ann’s birthday is looming ahead and I am getting dreadfully anxious that her
                                      parcels do not arrive in time. I am delighted that you were able to get a good head for
                                      her doll, dad, but horrified to hear that it was so expensive. You would love your
                                      ‘Charming Ann’. She is a most responsible little soul and seems to have outgrown her
                                      mischievous ways. A pity in a way, I don’t want her to grow too serious. You should see
                                      how thoroughly Ann baths and towels herself. She is anxious to do Georgie and Kate
                                      as well.

                                      I did not mean to teach Ann to write until after her fifth birthday but she has taught
                                      herself by copying the large print in newspaper headlines. She would draw a letter and
                                      ask me the name and now I find that at four Ann knows the whole alphabet. The front
                                      cement steps is her favourite writing spot. She uses bits of white clay we use here for
                                      whitewashing.

                                      Coffee prices are still very low and a lot of planters here and at Mbosi are in a
                                      mess as they can no longer raise mortgages on their farms or get advances from the
                                      Bank against their crops. We hear many are leaving their farms to try their luck on the
                                      Diggings.

                                      George is getting fed up too. The snails are back on the shamba and doing
                                      frightful damage. Talk of the plagues of Egypt! Once more they are being collected in
                                      piles and bashed into pulp. The stench on the shamba is frightful! The greybeards in the
                                      village tell George that the local Chief has put a curse on the farm because he is angry
                                      that the Government granted George a small extension to the farm two years ago! As
                                      the Chief was consulted at the time and was agreeable this talk of a curse is nonsense
                                      but goes to show how the uneducated African put all disasters down to witchcraft.

                                      With much love,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 9th February 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Ann’s birthday yesterday was not quite the gay occasion we had hoped. The
                                      seventh was mail day so we sent a runner for the mail, hoping against hope that your
                                      parcel containing the dolls head had arrived. The runner left for Mbeya at dawn but, as it
                                      was a very wet day, he did not return with the mail bag until after dark by which time Ann
                                      was fast asleep. My heart sank when I saw the parcel which contained the dolls new
                                      head. It was squashed quite flat. I shed a few tears over that shattered head, broken
                                      quite beyond repair, and George felt as bad about it as I did. The other parcel arrived in
                                      good shape and Ann loves her little sewing set, especially the thimble, and the nursery
                                      rhymes are a great success.

                                      Ann woke early yesterday and began to open her parcels. She said “But
                                      Mummy, didn’t Barbara’s new head come?” So I had to show her the fragments.
                                      Instead of shedding the flood of tears I expected, Ann just lifted the glass eyes in her
                                      hand and said in a tight little voice “Oh poor Barbara.” George saved the situation. as
                                      usual, by saying in a normal voice,”Come on Ann, get up and lets play your new
                                      records.” So we had music and sweets before breakfast. Later I removed Barbara’s
                                      faded old blond wig and gummed on the glossy new brown one and Ann seems quite
                                      satisfied.

                                      Last night, after the children were tucked up in bed, we discussed our financial
                                      situation. The coffee trees that have survived the plagues of borer beetle, mealie bugs
                                      and snails look strong and fine, but George says it will be years before we make a living
                                      out of the farm. He says he will simply have to make some money and he is leaving for
                                      the Lupa on Saturday to have a look around on the Diggings. If he does decide to peg
                                      a claim and work it he will put up a wattle and daub hut and the children and I will join him
                                      there. But until such time as he strikes gold I shall have to remain here on the farm and
                                      ‘Keep the Home Fires Burning’.

                                      Now don’t go and waste pity on me. Women all over the country are having to
                                      stay at home whilst their husbands search for a livelihood. I am better off than most
                                      because I have a comfortable little home and loyal servants and we still have enough
                                      capitol to keep the wolf from the door. Anyway this is the rainy season and hardly the
                                      best time to drag three small children around the sodden countryside on prospecting
                                      safaris.

                                      So I’ll stay here at home and hold thumbs that George makes a lucky strike.

                                      Heaps of love to all,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 27th February 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Well, George has gone but here we are quite safe and cosy. Kate is asleep and
                                      Ann and Georgie are sprawled on the couch taking it in turns to enumerate the things
                                      God has made. Every now and again Ann bothers me with an awkward question. “Did
                                      God make spiders? Well what for? Did he make weeds? Isn’t He silly, mummy? She is
                                      becoming a very practical person. She sews surprisingly well for a four year old and has
                                      twice made cakes in the past week, very sweet and liberally coloured with cochineal and
                                      much appreciated by Georgie.

                                      I have been without George for a fortnight and have adapted myself to my new
                                      life. The children are great company during the day and I have arranged my evenings so
                                      that they do not seem long. I am determined that when George comes home he will find
                                      a transformed wife. I read an article entitled ‘Are you the girl he married?’ in a magazine
                                      last week and took a good look in the mirror and decided that I certainly was not! Hair dry,
                                      skin dry, and I fear, a faint shadow on the upper lip. So now I have blown the whole of
                                      your Christmas Money Order on an order to a chemist in Dar es Salaam for hair tonic,
                                      face cream and hair remover and am anxiously awaiting the parcel.

                                      In the meantime, after tucking the children into bed at night, I skip on the verandah
                                      and do the series of exercises recommended in the magazine article. After this exertion I
                                      have a leisurely bath followed by a light supper and then read or write letters to pass
                                      the time until Kate’s ten o’clock feed. I have arranged for Janey to sleep in the house.
                                      She comes in at 9.30 pm and makes up her bed on the living room floor by the fire.

                                      The days are by no means uneventful. The day before yesterday the biggest
                                      troop of monkeys I have ever seen came fooling around in the trees and on the grass
                                      only a few yards from the house. These monkeys were the common grey monkeys
                                      with black faces. They came in all sizes and were most entertaining to watch. Ann and
                                      Georgie had a great time copying their antics and pulling faces at the monkeys through
                                      the bedroom windows which I hastily closed.

                                      Thomas, our headman, came running up and told me that this troop of monkeys
                                      had just raided his maize shamba and asked me to shoot some of them. I would not of
                                      course do this. I still cannot bear to kill any animal, but I fired a couple of shots in the air
                                      and the monkeys just melted away. It was fantastic, one moment they were there and
                                      the next they were not. Ann and Georgie thought I had been very unkind to frighten the
                                      poor monkeys but honestly, when I saw what they had done to my flower garden, I
                                      almost wished I had hardened my heart and shot one or two.

                                      The children are all well but Ann gave me a nasty fright last week. I left Ann and
                                      Georgie at breakfast whilst I fed Fanny, our bull terrier on the back verandah. Suddenly I
                                      heard a crash and rushed inside to find Ann’s chair lying on its back and Ann beside it on
                                      the floor perfectly still and with a paper white face. I shouted for Janey to bring water and
                                      laid Ann flat on the couch and bathed her head and hands. Soon she sat up with a wan
                                      smile and said “I nearly knocked my head off that time, didn’t I.” She must have been
                                      standing on the chair and leaning against the back. Our brick floors are so terribly hard that
                                      she might have been seriously hurt.

                                      However she was none the worse for the fall, but Heavens, what an anxiety kids
                                      are.

                                      Lots of love,
                                      Eleanor

                                      Mchewe Estate. 12th March 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      It was marvellous of you to send another money order to replace the one I spent
                                      on cosmetics. With this one I intend to order boots for both children as a protection from
                                      snake bite, though from my experience this past week the threat seems to be to the
                                      head rather than the feet. I was sitting on the couch giving Kate her morning milk from a
                                      cup when a long thin snake fell through the reed ceiling and landed with a thud just behind
                                      the couch. I shouted “Nyoka, Nyoka!” (Snake,Snake!) and the houseboy rushed in with
                                      a stick and killed the snake. I then held the cup to Kate’s mouth again but I suppose in
                                      my agitation I tipped it too much because the baby choked badly. She gasped for
                                      breath. I quickly gave her a sharp smack on the back and a stream of milk gushed
                                      through her mouth and nostrils and over me. Janey took Kate from me and carried her
                                      out into the fresh air on the verandah and as I anxiously followed her through the door,
                                      another long snake fell from the top of the wall just missing me by an inch or so. Luckily
                                      the houseboy still had the stick handy and dispatched this snake also.

                                      The snakes were a pair of ‘boomslangs’, not nice at all, and all day long I have
                                      had shamba boys coming along to touch hands and say “Poli Memsahib” – “Sorry
                                      madam”, meaning of course ‘Sorry you had a fright.’

                                      Apart from that one hectic morning this has been a quiet week. Before George
                                      left for the Lupa he paid off most of the farm hands as we can now only afford a few
                                      labourers for the essential work such as keeping the weeds down in the coffee shamba.
                                      There is now no one to keep the grass on the farm roads cut so we cannot use the pram
                                      when we go on our afternoon walks. Instead Janey carries Kate in a sling on her back.
                                      Janey is a very clean slim woman, and her clothes are always spotless, so Kate keeps
                                      cool and comfortable. Ann and Georgie always wear thick overalls on our walks as a
                                      protection against thorns and possible snakes. We usually make our way to the
                                      Mchewe River where Ann and Georgie paddle in the clear cold water and collect shiny
                                      stones.

                                      The cosmetics parcel duly arrived by post from Dar es Salaam so now I fill the
                                      evenings between supper and bed time attending to my face! The much advertised
                                      cream is pink and thick and feels revolting. I smooth it on before bedtime and keep it on
                                      all night. Just imagine if George could see me! The advertisements promise me a skin
                                      like a rose in six weeks. What a surprise there is in store for George!

                                      You will have been wondering what has happened to George. Well on the Lupa
                                      he heard rumours of a new gold strike somewhere in the Sumbawanga District. A couple
                                      of hundred miles from here I think, though I am not sure where it is and have no one to
                                      ask. You look it up on the map and tell me. John Molteno is also interested in this and
                                      anxious to have it confirmed so he and George have come to an agreement. John
                                      Molteno provided the porters for the journey together with prospecting tools and
                                      supplies but as he cannot leave his claims, or his gold buying business, George is to go
                                      on foot to the area of the rumoured gold strike and, if the strike looks promising will peg
                                      claims in both their names.

                                      The rainy season is now at its height and the whole countryside is under water. All
                                      roads leading to the area are closed to traffic and, as there are few Europeans who
                                      would attempt the journey on foot, George proposes to get a head start on them by
                                      making this uncomfortable safari. I have just had my first letter from George since he left
                                      on this prospecting trip. It took ages to reach me because it was sent by runner to
                                      Abercorn in Northern Rhodesia, then on by lorry to Mpika where it was put on a plane
                                      for Mbeya. George writes the most charming letters which console me a little upon our
                                      all too frequent separations.

                                      His letter was cheerful and optimistic, though reading between the lines I should
                                      say he had a grim time. He has reached Sumbawanga after ‘a hell of a trip’, to find that
                                      the rumoured strike was at Mpanda and he had a few more days of foot safari ahead.
                                      He had found the trip from the Lupa even wetter than he had expected. The party had
                                      three days of wading through swamps sometimes waist deep in water. Of his sixteen
                                      porters, four deserted an the second day out and five others have had malaria and so
                                      been unable to carry their loads. He himself is ‘thin but very fit’, and he sounds full of
                                      beans and writes gaily of the marvellous holiday we will have if he has any decent luck! I
                                      simply must get that mink and diamonds complexion.

                                      The frustrating thing is that I cannot write back as I have no idea where George is
                                      now.

                                      With heaps of love,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 24th March 1936

                                      Dearest Family,
                                      How kind you are. Another parcel from home. Although we are very short
                                      of labourers I sent a special runner to fetch it as Ann simply couldn’t bear the suspense
                                      of waiting to see Brenda, “My new little girl with plaits.” Thank goodness Brenda is
                                      unbreakable. I could not have born another tragedy. She really is an exquisite little doll
                                      and has hardly been out of Ann’s arms since arrival. She showed Brenda proudly to all
                                      the staff. The kitchen boy’s face was a study. His eyes fairly came out on sticks when he
                                      saw the dolls eyes not only opening and shutting, but moving from side to side in that
                                      incredibly lifelike way. Georgie loves his little model cars which he carries around all day
                                      and puts under his pillow at night.

                                      As for me, I am enchanted by my very smart new frock. Janey was so lavish with
                                      her compliments when I tried the frock on, that in a burst of generosity I gave her that
                                      rather tartish satin and lace trousseau nighty, and she was positively enthralled. She
                                      wore it that very night when she appeared as usual to doss down by the fire.
                                      By the way it was Janey’s turn to have a fright this week. She was in the
                                      bathroom washing the children’s clothes in an outsize hand basin when it happened. As
                                      she took Georgie’s overalls from the laundry basket a large centipede ran up her bare
                                      arm. Luckily she managed to knock the centipede off into the hot water in the hand basin.
                                      It was a brute, about six inches long of viciousness with a nasty sting. The locals say that
                                      the bite is much worse than a scorpions so Janey had a lucky escape.

                                      Kate cut her first two teeth yesterday and will, I hope, sleep better now. I don’t
                                      feel that pink skin food is getting a fair trial with all those broken nights. There is certainly
                                      no sign yet of ‘The skin he loves to touch”. Kate, I may say, is rosy and blooming. She
                                      can pull herself upright providing she has something solid to hold on to. She is so plump
                                      I have horrible visions of future bow legs so I push her down, but she always bobs up
                                      again.

                                      Both Ann and Georgie are mad on books. Their favourites are ‘Barbar and
                                      Celeste” and, of all things, ‘Struvel Peter’ . They listen with absolute relish to the sad tale
                                      of Harriet who played with matches.

                                      I have kept a laugh for the end. I am hoping that it will not be long before George
                                      comes home and thought it was time to take the next step towards glamour, so last
                                      Wednesday after lunch I settled the children on their beds and prepared to remove the ,
                                      to me, obvious down on my upper lip. (George always loyally says that he can’t see
                                      any.) Well I got out the tube of stuff and carefully followed the directions. I smoothed a
                                      coating on my upper lip. All this was watched with great interest by the children, including
                                      the baby, who stood up in her cot for a better view. Having no watch, I had propped
                                      the bedroom door open so that I could time the operation by the cuckoo clock in the
                                      living room. All the children’s surprised comments fell on deaf ears. I would neither talk
                                      nor smile for fear of cracking the hair remover which had set hard. The set time was up
                                      and I was just about to rinse the remover off when Kate slipped, knocking her head on
                                      the corner of the cot. I rushed to the rescue and precious seconds ticked off whilst I
                                      pacified her.

                                      So, my dears, when I rinsed my lip, not only the plaster and the hair came away
                                      but the skin as well and now I really did have a Ronald Coleman moustache – a crimson
                                      one. I bathed it, I creamed it, powdered it but all to no avail. Within half an hour my lip
                                      had swollen until I looked like one of those Duckbilled West African women. Ann’s
                                      comments, “Oh Mummy, you do look funny. Georgie, doesn’t Mummy look funny?”
                                      didn’t help to soothe me and the last straw was that just then there was the sound of a car drawing up outside – the first car I had heard for months. Anyway, thank heaven, it
                                      was not George, but the representative of a firm which sells agricultural machinery and
                                      farm implements, looking for orders. He had come from Dar es Salaam and had not
                                      heard that all the planters from this district had left their farms. Hospitality demanded that I
                                      should appear and offer tea. I did not mind this man because he was a complete
                                      stranger and fat, middle aged and comfortable. So I gave him tea, though I didn’t
                                      attempt to drink any myself, and told him the whole sad tale.

                                      Fortunately much of the swelling had gone next day and only a brown dryness
                                      remained. I find myself actually hoping that George is delayed a bit longer. Of one thing
                                      I am sure. If ever I grow a moustache again, it stays!

                                      Heaps of love from a sadder but wiser,
                                      Eleanor

                                      Mchewe Estate. 3rd April 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Sound the trumpets, beat the drums. George is home again. The safari, I am sad
                                      to say, was a complete washout in more ways than one. Anyway it was lovely to be
                                      together again and we don’t yet talk about the future. The home coming was not at all as
                                      I had planned it. I expected George to return in our old A.C. car which gives ample
                                      warning of its arrival. I had meant to wear my new frock and make myself as glamourous
                                      as possible, with our beautiful babe on one arm and our other jewels by my side.
                                      This however is what actually happened. Last Saturday morning at about 2 am , I
                                      thought I heard someone whispering my name. I sat up in bed, still half asleep, and
                                      there was George at the window. He was thin and unshaven and the tiredest looking
                                      man I have ever seen. The car had bogged down twenty miles back along the old Lupa
                                      Track, but as George had had no food at all that day, he decided to walk home in the
                                      bright moonlight.

                                      This is where I should have served up a tasty hot meal but alas, there was only
                                      the heal of a loaf and no milk because, before going to bed I had given the remaining
                                      milk to the dog. However George seemed too hungry to care what he ate. He made a
                                      meal off a tin of bully, a box of crustless cheese and the bread washed down with cup
                                      after cup of black tea. Though George was tired we talked for hours and it was dawn
                                      before we settled down to sleep.

                                      During those hours of talk George described his nightmarish journey. He started
                                      up the flooded Rukwa Valley and there were days of wading through swamp and mud
                                      and several swollen rivers to cross. George is a strong swimmer and the porters who
                                      were recruited in that area, could also swim. There remained the problem of the stores
                                      and of Kianda the houseboy who cannot swim. For these they made rough pole rafts
                                      which they pulled across the rivers with ropes. Kianda told me later that he hopes never
                                      to make such a journey again. He swears that the raft was submerged most of the time
                                      and that he was dragged through the rivers underwater! You should see the state of
                                      George’s clothes which were packed in a supposedly water tight uniform trunk. The
                                      whole lot are mud stained and mouldy.

                                      To make matters more trying for George he was obliged to live mostly on
                                      porters rations, rice and groundnut oil which he detests. As all the district roads were
                                      closed the little Indian Sores in the remote villages he passed had been unable to
                                      replenish their stocks of European groceries. George would have been thinner had it not
                                      been for two Roman Catholic missions enroute where he had good meals and dry
                                      nights. The Fathers are always wonderfully hospitable to wayfarers irrespective of
                                      whether or not they are Roman Catholics. George of course is not a Catholic. One finds
                                      the Roman Catholic missions right out in the ‘Blue’ and often on spots unhealthy to
                                      Europeans. Most of the Fathers are German or Dutch but they all speak a little English
                                      and in any case one can always fall back on Ki-Swahili.

                                      George reached his destination all right but it soon became apparent that reports
                                      of the richness of the strike had been greatly exaggerated. George had decided that
                                      prospects were brighter on the Lupa than on the new strike so he returned to the Lupa
                                      by the way he had come and, having returned the borrowed equipment decided to
                                      make his way home by the shortest route, the old and now rarely used road which
                                      passes by the bottom of our farm.

                                      The old A.C. had been left for safe keeping at the Roman Catholic Galala
                                      Mission 40 miles away, on George’s outward journey, and in this old car George, and
                                      the houseboy Kianda , started for home. The road was indescribably awful. There were long stretches that were simply one big puddle, in others all the soil had been washed
                                      away leaving the road like a rocky river bed. There were also patches where the tall
                                      grass had sprung up head high in the middle of the road,
                                      The going was slow because often the car bogged down because George had
                                      no wheel chains and he and Kianda had the wearisome business of digging her out. It
                                      was just growing dark when the old A.C. settled down determinedly in the mud for the
                                      last time. They could not budge her and they were still twenty miles from home. George
                                      decided to walk home in the moonlight to fetch help leaving Kianda in charge of the car
                                      and its contents and with George’s shot gun to use if necessary in self defence. Kianda
                                      was reluctant to stay but also not prepared to go for help whilst George remained with
                                      the car as lions are plentiful in that area. So George set out unarmed in the moonlight.
                                      Once he stopped to avoid a pride of lion coming down the road but he circled safely
                                      around them and came home without any further alarms.

                                      Kianda said he had a dreadful night in the car, “With lions roaming around the car
                                      like cattle.” Anyway the lions did not take any notice of the car or of Kianda, and the next
                                      day George walked back with all our farm boys and dug and pushed the car out of the
                                      mud. He brought car and Kianda back without further trouble but the labourers on their
                                      way home were treed by the lions.

                                      The wet season is definitely the time to stay home.

                                      Lots and lots of love,
                                      Eleanor

                                      Mchewe Estate. 30th April 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Young George’s third birthday passed off very well yesterday. It started early in
                                      the morning when he brought his pillow slip of presents to our bed. Kate was already
                                      there and Ann soon joined us. Young George liked all the presents you sent, especially
                                      the trumpet. It has hardly left his lips since and he is getting quite smart about the finger
                                      action.

                                      We had quite a party. Ann and I decorated the table with Christmas tree tinsel
                                      and hung a bunch of balloons above it. Ann also decorated young George’s chair with
                                      roses and phlox from the garden. I had made and iced a fruit cake but Ann begged to
                                      make a plain pink cake. She made it entirely by herself though I stood by to see that
                                      she measured the ingredients correctly. When the cake was baked I mixed some soft
                                      icing in a jug and she poured it carefully over the cake smoothing the gaps with her
                                      fingers!

                                      During the party we had the gramophone playing and we pulled crackers and
                                      wore paper hats and altogether had a good time. I forgot for a while that George is
                                      leaving again for the Lupa tomorrow for an indefinite time. He was marvellous at making
                                      young George’s party a gay one. You will have noticed the change from Georgie to
                                      young George. Our son declares that he now wants to be called George, “Like Dad”.
                                      He an Ann are a devoted couple and I am glad that there is only a fourteen
                                      months difference in their ages. They play together extremely well and are very
                                      independent which is just as well for little Kate now demands a lot of my attention. My
                                      garden is a real cottage garden and looks very gay and colourful. There are hollyhocks
                                      and Snapdragons, marigolds and phlox and of course the roses and carnations which, as
                                      you know, are my favourites. The coffee shamba does not look so good because the
                                      small labour force, which is all we can afford, cannot cope with all the weeds. You have
                                      no idea how things grow during the wet season in the tropics.

                                      Nothing alarming ever seems to happen when George is home, so I’m afraid this
                                      letter is rather dull. I wanted you to know though, that largely due to all your gifts of toys
                                      and sweets, Georgie’s 3rd birthday party went with a bang.

                                      Your very affectionate,
                                      Eleanor

                                      Mchewe Estate. 17th September 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      I am sorry to hear that Mummy worries about me so much. “Poor Eleanor”,
                                      indeed! I have a quite exceptional husband, three lovely children, a dear little home and
                                      we are all well.It is true that I am in rather a rut but what else can we do? George comes
                                      home whenever he can and what excitement there is when he does come. He cannot
                                      give me any warning because he has to take advantage of chance lifts from the Diggings
                                      to Mbeya, but now that he is prospecting nearer home he usually comes walking over
                                      the hills. About 50 miles of rough going. Really and truly I am all right. Although our diet is
                                      monotonous we have plenty to eat. Eggs and milk are cheap and fruit plentiful and I
                                      have a good cook so can devote all my time to the children. I think it is because they are
                                      my constant companions that Ann and Georgie are so grown up for their years.
                                      I have no ayah at present because Janey has been suffering form rheumatism
                                      and has gone home for one of her periodic rests. I manage very well without her except
                                      in the matter of the afternoon walks. The outward journey is all right. George had all the
                                      grass cut on his last visit so I am able to push the pram whilst Ann, George and Fanny
                                      the dog run ahead. It is the uphill return trip that is so trying. Our walk back is always the
                                      same, down the hill to the river where the children love to play and then along the car
                                      road to the vegetable garden. I never did venture further since the day I saw a leopard
                                      jump on a calf. I did not tell you at the time as I thought you might worry. The cattle were
                                      grazing on a small knoll just off our land but near enough for me to have a clear view.
                                      Suddenly the cattle scattered in all directions and we heard the shouts of the herd boys
                                      and saw – or rather had the fleeting impression- of a large animal jumping on a calf. I
                                      heard the herd boy shout “Chui, Chui!” (leopard) and believe me, we turned in our
                                      tracks and made for home. To hasten things I picked up two sticks and told the children
                                      that they were horses and they should ride them home which they did with
                                      commendable speed.

                                      Ann no longer rides Joseph. He became increasingly bad tempered and a
                                      nuisance besides. He took to rolling all over my flower beds though I had never seen
                                      him roll anywhere else. Then one day he kicked Ann in the chest, not very hard but
                                      enough to send her flying. Now George has given him to the native who sells milk to us
                                      and he seems quite happy grazing with the cattle.

                                      With love to you all,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 2nd October 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Since I last wrote George has been home and we had a lovely time as usual.
                                      Whilst he was here the District Commissioner and his wife called. Mr Pollock told
                                      George that there is to be a big bush clearing scheme in some part of the Mbeya
                                      District to drive out Tsetse Fly. The game in the area will have to be exterminated and
                                      there will probably be a job for George shooting out the buffalo. The pay would be
                                      good but George says it is a beastly job. Although he is a professional hunter, he hates
                                      slaughter.

                                      Mrs P’s real reason for visiting the farm was to invite me to stay at her home in
                                      Mbeya whilst she and her husband are away in Tukuyu. Her English nanny and her small
                                      daughter will remain in Mbeya and she thought it might be a pleasant change for us and
                                      a rest for me as of course Nanny will do the housekeeping. I accepted the invitation and I
                                      think I will go on from there to Tukuyu and visit my friend Lillian Eustace for a fortnight.
                                      She has given us an open invitation to visit her at any time.

                                      I had a letter from Dr Eckhardt last week, telling me that at a meeting of all the
                                      German Settlers from Mbeya, Tukuyu and Mbosi it had been decided to raise funds to
                                      build a school at Mbeya. They want the British Settlers to co-operate in this and would
                                      be glad of a subscription from us. I replied to say that I was unable to afford a
                                      subscription at present but would probably be applying for a teaching job.
                                      The Eckhardts are the leaders of the German community here and are ardent
                                      Nazis. For this reason they are unpopular with the British community but he is the only
                                      doctor here and I must say they have been very decent to us. Both of them admire
                                      George. George has still not had any luck on the Lupa and until he makes a really
                                      promising strike it is unlikely that the children and I will join him. There is no fresh milk there
                                      and vegetables and fruit are imported from Mbeya and Iringa and are very expensive.
                                      George says “You wouldn’t be happy on the diggings anyway with a lot of whores and
                                      their bastards!”

                                      Time ticks away very pleasantly here. Young George and Kate are blooming
                                      and I keep well. Only Ann does not look well. She is growing too fast and is listless and
                                      pale. If I do go to Mbeya next week I shall take her to the doctor to be overhauled.
                                      We do not go for our afternoon walks now that George has returned to the Lupa.
                                      That leopard has been around again and has killed Tubbage that cowardly Alsatian. We
                                      gave him to the village headman some months ago. There is no danger to us from the
                                      leopard but I am terrified it might get Fanny, who is an excellent little watchdog and
                                      dearly loved by all of us. Yesterday I sent a note to the Boma asking for a trap gun and
                                      today the farm boys are building a trap with logs.

                                      I had a mishap this morning in the garden. I blundered into a nest of hornets and
                                      got two stings in the left arm above the elbow. Very painful at the time and the place is
                                      still red and swollen.

                                      Much love to you all,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe Estate. 10th October 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      Well here we are at Mbeya, comfortably installed in the District Commissioner’s
                                      house. It is one of two oldest houses in Mbeya and is a charming gabled place with tiled
                                      roof. The garden is perfectly beautiful. I am enjoying the change very much. Nanny
                                      Baxter is very entertaining. She has a vast fund of highly entertaining tales of the goings
                                      on amongst the British Aristocracy, gleaned it seems over the nursery teacup in many a
                                      Stately Home. Ann and Georgie are enjoying the company of other children.
                                      People are very kind about inviting us out to tea and I gladly accept these
                                      invitations but I have turned down invitations to dinner and one to a dance at the hotel. It
                                      is no fun to go out at night without George. There are several grass widows at the pub
                                      whose husbands are at the diggings. They have no inhibitions about parties.
                                      I did have one night and day here with George, he got the chance of a lift and
                                      knowing that we were staying here he thought the chance too good to miss. He was
                                      also anxious to hear the Doctor’s verdict on Ann. I took Ann to hospital on my second
                                      day here. Dr Eckhardt said there was nothing specifically wrong but that Ann is a highly
                                      sensitive type with whom the tropics does not agree. He advised that Ann should
                                      spend a year in a more temperate climate and that the sooner she goes the better. I felt
                                      very discouraged to hear this and was most relieved when George turned up
                                      unexpectedly that evening. He phoo-hood Dr Eckhardt’s recommendation and next
                                      morning called in Dr Aitkin, the Government Doctor from Chunya and who happened to
                                      be in Mbeya.

                                      Unfortunately Dr Aitkin not only confirmed Dr Eckhardt’s opinion but said that he
                                      thought Ann should stay out of the tropics until she had passed adolescence. I just don’t
                                      know what to do about Ann. She is a darling child, very sensitive and gentle and a
                                      lovely companion to me. Also she and young George are inseparable and I just cannot
                                      picture one without the other. I know that you would be glad to have Ann but how could
                                      we bear to part with her?

                                      Your worried but affectionate,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Tukuyu. 23rd October 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      As you see we have moved to Tukuyu and we are having a lovely time with
                                      Lillian Eustace. She gave us such a warm welcome and has put herself out to give us
                                      every comfort. She is a most capable housekeeper and I find her such a comfortable
                                      companion because we have the same outlook in life. Both of us are strictly one man
                                      women and that is rare here. She has a two year old son, Billy, who is enchanted with
                                      our rolly polly Kate and there are other children on the station with whom Ann and
                                      Georgie can play. Lillian engaged a temporary ayah for me so I am having a good rest.
                                      All the children look well and Ann in particular seems to have benefited by the
                                      change to a cooler climate. She has a good colour and looks so well that people all
                                      exclaim when I tell them, that two doctors have advised us to send Ann out of the
                                      country. Perhaps after all, this holiday in Tukuyu will set her up.

                                      We had a trying journey from Mbeya to Tukuyu in the Post Lorry. The three
                                      children and I were squeezed together on the front seat between the African driver on
                                      one side and a vast German on the other. Both men smoked incessantly – the driver
                                      cigarettes, and the German cheroots. The cab was clouded with a blue haze. Not only
                                      that! I suddenly felt a smarting sensation on my right thigh. The driver’s cigarette had
                                      burnt a hole right through that new checked linen frock you sent me last month.
                                      I had Kate on my lap all the way but Ann and Georgie had to stand against the
                                      windscreen all the way. The fat German offered to take Ann on his lap but she gave him
                                      a very cold “No thank you.” Nor did I blame her. I would have greatly enjoyed the drive
                                      under less crowded conditions. The scenery is gorgeous. One drives through very high
                                      country crossing lovely clear streams and at one point through rain forest. As it was I
                                      counted the miles and how thankful I was to see the end of the journey.
                                      In the days when Tanganyika belonged to the Germans, Tukuyu was the
                                      administrative centre for the whole of the Southern Highlands Province. The old German
                                      Fort is still in use as Government offices and there are many fine trees which were
                                      planted by the Germans. There is a large prosperous native population in this area.
                                      They go in chiefly for coffee and for bananas which form the basis of their diet.
                                      There are five British married couples here and Lillian and I go out to tea most
                                      mornings. In the afternoon there is tennis or golf. The gardens here are beautiful because
                                      there is rain or at least drizzle all the year round. There are even hedge roses bordering
                                      some of the district roads. When one walks across the emerald green golf course or
                                      through the Boma gardens, it is hard to realise that this gentle place is Tropical Africa.
                                      ‘Such a green and pleasant land’, but I think I prefer our corner of Tanganyika.

                                      Much love,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Mchewe. 12th November 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      We had a lovely holiday but it is so nice to be home again, especially as Laza,
                                      the local Nimrod, shot that leopard whilst we were away (with his muzzleloader gun). He
                                      was justly proud of himself, and I gave him a tip so that he could buy some native beer
                                      for a celebration. I have never seen one of theses parties but can hear the drums and
                                      sounds of merrymaking, especially on moonlight nights.

                                      Our house looks so fresh and uncluttered. Whilst I was away, the boys
                                      whitewashed the house and my houseboy had washed all the curtains, bedspreads,
                                      and loose covers and watered the garden. If only George were here it would be
                                      heaven.

                                      Ann looked so bonny at Tukuyu that I took her to the Government Doctor there
                                      hoping that he would find her perfectly healthy, but alas he endorsed the finding of the
                                      other two doctors so, when an opportunity offers, I think I shall have to send Ann down
                                      to you for a long holiday from the Tropics. Mother-in-law has offered to fetch her next
                                      year but England seems so far away. With you she will at least be on the same
                                      continent.

                                      I left the children for the first time ever, except for my stay in hospital when Kate
                                      was born, to go on an outing to Lake Masoko in the Tukuyu district, with four friends.
                                      Masoko is a beautiful, almost circular crater lake and very very deep. A detachment of
                                      the King’s African Rifles are stationed there and occupy the old German barracks
                                      overlooking the lake.

                                      We drove to Masoko by car and spent the afternoon there as guests of two
                                      British Army Officers. We had a good tea and the others went bathing in the lake but i
                                      could not as I did not have a costume. The Lake was as beautiful as I had been lead to
                                      imagine and our hosts were pleasant but I began to grow anxious as the afternoon
                                      advanced and my friends showed no signs of leaving. I was in agonies when they
                                      accepted an invitation to stay for a sundowner. We had this in the old German beer
                                      garden overlooking the Lake. It was beautiful but what did I care. I had promised the
                                      children that I would be home to give them their supper and put them to bed. When I
                                      did at length return to Lillian’s house I found the situation as I had expected. Ann, with her
                                      imagination had come to the conclusion that I never would return. She had sobbed
                                      herself into a state of exhaustion. Kate was screaming in sympathy and George 2 was
                                      very truculent. He wouldn’t even speak to me. Poor Lillian had had a trying time.
                                      We did not return to Mbeya by the Mail Lorry. Bill and Lillian drove us across to
                                      Mbeya in their new Ford V8 car. The children chattered happily in the back of the car
                                      eating chocolate and bananas all the way. I might have known what would happen! Ann
                                      was dreadfully and messily car sick.

                                      I engaged the Mbeya Hotel taxi to drive us out to the farm the same afternoon
                                      and I expect it will be a long time before we leave the farm again.

                                      Lots and lots of love to all,
                                      Eleanor.

                                      Chunya 27th November 1936

                                      Dearest Family,

                                      You will be surprised to hear that we are all together now on the Lupa goldfields.
                                      I have still not recovered from my own astonishment at being here. Until last Saturday
                                      night I never dreamed of this move. At about ten o’clock I was crouched in the inglenook
                                      blowing on the embers to make a fire so that I could heat some milk for Kate who is
                                      cutting teeth and was very restless. Suddenly I heard a car outside. I knew it must be
                                      George and rushed outside storm lamp in hand. Sure enough, there was George
                                      standing by a strange car, and beaming all over his face. “Something for you my love,”
                                      he said placing a little bundle in my hand. It was a knotted handkerchief and inside was a
                                      fine gold nugget.

                                      George had that fire going in no time, Kate was given the milk and half an aspirin
                                      and settles down to sleep, whilst George and I sat around for an hour chatting over our
                                      tea. He told me that he had borrowed the car from John Molteno and had come to fetch
                                      me and the children to join him on the diggings for a while. It seems that John, who has a
                                      camp at Itewe, a couple of miles outside the township of Chunya, the new
                                      Administrative Centre of the diggings, was off to the Cape to visit his family for a few
                                      months. John had asked George to run his claims in his absence and had given us the
                                      loan of his camp and his car.

                                      George had found the nugget on his own claim but he is not too elated because
                                      he says that one good month on the diggings is often followed by several months of
                                      dead loss. However, I feel hopeful, we have had such a run of bad luck that surely it is
                                      time for the tide to change. George spent Sunday going over the farm with Thomas, the
                                      headman, and giving him instructions about future work whilst I packed clothes and
                                      kitchen equipment. I have brought our ex-kitchenboy Kesho Kutwa with me as cook and
                                      also Janey, who heard that we were off to the Lupa and came to offer her services once
                                      more as ayah. Janey’s ex-husband Abel is now cook to one of the more successful
                                      diggers and I think she is hoping to team up with him again.

                                      The trip over the Mbeya-Chunya pass was new to me and I enjoyed it very
                                      much indeed. The road winds over the mountains along a very high escarpment and
                                      one looks down on the vast Usangu flats stretching far away to the horizon. At the
                                      highest point the road rises to about 7000 feet, and this was too much for Ann who was
                                      leaning against the back of my seat. She was very thoroughly sick, all over my hair.
                                      This camp of John Molteno’s is very comfortable. It consists of two wattle and
                                      daub buildings built end to end in a clearing in the miombo bush. The main building
                                      consists of a large living room, a store and an office, and the other of one large bedroom
                                      and a small one separated by an area for bathing. Both buildings are thatched. There are
                                      no doors, and there are no windows, but these are not necessary because one wall of
                                      each building is built up only a couple of feet leaving a six foot space for light and air. As
                                      this is the dry season the weather is pleasant. The air is fresh and dry but not nearly so
                                      hot as I expected.

                                      Water is a problem and must be carried long distances in kerosene tins.
                                      vegetables and fresh butter are brought in a van from Iringa and Mbeya Districts about
                                      once a fortnight. I have not yet visited Chunya but I believe it is as good a shopping
                                      centre as Mbeya so we will be able to buy all the non perishable food stuffs we need.
                                      What I do miss is the fresh milk. The children are accustomed to drinking at least a pint of
                                      milk each per day but they do not care for the tinned variety.

                                      Ann and young George love being here. The camp is surrounded by old
                                      prospecting trenches and they spend hours each day searching for gold in the heaps of gravel. Sometimes they find quartz pitted with little spots of glitter and they bring them
                                      to me in great excitement. Alas it is only Mica. We have two neighbours. The one is a
                                      bearded Frenchman and the other an Australian. I have not yet met any women.
                                      George looks very sunburnt and extremely fit and the children also look well.
                                      George and I have decided that we will keep Ann with us until my Mother-in-law comes
                                      out next year. George says that in spite of what the doctors have said, he thinks that the
                                      shock to Ann of being separated from her family will do her more harm than good. She
                                      and young George are inseparable and George thinks it would be best if both
                                      George and Ann return to England with my Mother-in-law for a couple of years. I try not
                                      to think at all about the breaking up of the family.

                                      Much love to all,
                                      Eleanor.

                                       

                                      #6261
                                      TracyTracy
                                      Participant

                                        From Tanganyika with Love

                                        continued

                                        With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 11th July 1931.

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        You say that you would like to know more about our neighbours. Well there is
                                        not much to tell. Kath Wood is very good about coming over to see me. I admire her
                                        very much because she is so capable as well as being attractive. She speaks very
                                        fluent Ki-Swahili and I envy her the way she can carry on a long conversation with the
                                        natives. I am very slow in learning the language possibly because Lamek and the
                                        houseboy both speak basic English.

                                        I have very little to do with the Africans apart from the house servants, but I do
                                        run a sort of clinic for the wives and children of our employees. The children suffer chiefly
                                        from sore eyes and worms, and the older ones often have bad ulcers on their legs. All
                                        farmers keep a stock of drugs and bandages.

                                        George also does a bit of surgery and last month sewed up the sole of the foot
                                        of a boy who had trodden on the blade of a panga, a sort of sword the Africans use for
                                        hacking down bush. He made an excellent job of it. George tells me that the Africans
                                        have wonderful powers of recuperation. Once in his bachelor days, one of his men was
                                        disembowelled by an elephant. George washed his “guts” in a weak solution of
                                        pot.permang, put them back in the cavity and sewed up the torn flesh and he
                                        recovered.

                                        But to get back to the neighbours. We see less of Hicky Wood than of Kath.
                                        Hicky can be charming but is often moody as I believe Irishmen often are.
                                        Major Jones is now at home on his shamba, which he leaves from time to time
                                        for temporary jobs on the district roads. He walks across fairly regularly and we are
                                        always glad to see him for he is a great bearer of news. In this part of Africa there is no
                                        knocking or ringing of doorbells. Front doors are always left open and visitors always
                                        welcome. When a visitor approaches a house he shouts “Hodi”, and the owner of the
                                        house yells “Karibu”, which I believe means “Come near” or approach, and tea is
                                        produced in a matter of minutes no matter what hour of the day it is.
                                        The road that passes all our farms is the only road to the Gold Diggings and
                                        diggers often drop in on the Woods and Major Jones and bring news of the Goldfields.
                                        This news is sometimes about gold but quite often about whose wife is living with
                                        whom. This is a great country for gossip.

                                        Major Jones now has his brother Llewyllen living with him. I drove across with
                                        George to be introduced to him. Llewyllen’s health is poor and he looks much older than
                                        his years and very like the portrait of Trader Horn. He has the same emaciated features,
                                        burning eyes and long beard. He is proud of his Welsh tenor voice and often bursts into
                                        song.

                                        Both brothers are excellent conversationalists and George enjoys walking over
                                        sometimes on a Sunday for a bit of masculine company. The other day when George
                                        walked across to visit the Joneses, he found both brothers in the shamba and Llew in a
                                        great rage. They had been stooping to inspect a water furrow when Llew backed into a
                                        hornets nest. One furious hornet stung him on the seat and another on the back of his
                                        neck. Llew leapt forward and somehow his false teeth shot out into the furrow and were
                                        carried along by the water. When George arrived Llew had retrieved his teeth but
                                        George swears that, in the commotion, the heavy leather leggings, which Llew always
                                        wears, had swivelled around on his thin legs and were calves to the front.
                                        George has heard that Major Jones is to sell pert of his land to his Swedish brother-in-law, Max Coster, so we will soon have another couple in the neighbourhood.

                                        I’ve had a bit of a pantomime here on the farm. On the day we went to Tukuyu,
                                        all our washing was stolen from the clothes line and also our new charcoal iron. George
                                        reported the matter to the police and they sent out a plain clothes policeman. He wears
                                        the long white Arab gown called a Kanzu much in vogue here amongst the African elite
                                        but, alas for secrecy, huge black police boots protrude from beneath the Kanzu and, to
                                        add to this revealing clue, the askari springs to attention and salutes each time I pass by.
                                        Not much hope of finding out the identity of the thief I fear.

                                        George’s furrow was entirely successful and we now have water running behind
                                        the kitchen. Our drinking water we get from a lovely little spring on the farm. We boil and
                                        filter it for safety’s sake. I don’t think that is necessary. The furrow water is used for
                                        washing pots and pans and for bath water.

                                        Lots of love,
                                        Eleanor

                                        Mchewe Estate. 8th. August 1931

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        I think it is about time I told you that we are going to have a baby. We are both
                                        thrilled about it. I have not seen a Doctor but feel very well and you are not to worry. I
                                        looked it up in my handbook for wives and reckon that the baby is due about February
                                        8th. next year.

                                        The announcement came from George, not me! I had been feeling queasy for
                                        days and was waiting for the right moment to tell George. You know. Soft lights and
                                        music etc. However when I was listlessly poking my food around one lunch time
                                        George enquired calmly, “When are you going to tell me about the baby?” Not at all
                                        according to the book! The problem is where to have the baby. February is a very wet
                                        month and the nearest Doctor is over 50 miles away at Tukuyu. I cannot go to stay at
                                        Tukuyu because there is no European accommodation at the hospital, no hotel and no
                                        friend with whom I could stay.

                                        George thinks I should go South to you but Capetown is so very far away and I
                                        love my little home here. Also George says he could not come all the way down with
                                        me as he simply must stay here and get the farm on its feet. He would drive me as far
                                        as the railway in Northern Rhodesia. It is a difficult decision to take. Write and tell me what
                                        you think.

                                        The days tick by quietly here. The servants are very willing but have to be
                                        supervised and even then a crisis can occur. Last Saturday I was feeling squeamish and
                                        decided not to have lunch. I lay reading on the couch whilst George sat down to a
                                        solitary curry lunch. Suddenly he gave an exclamation and pushed back his chair. I
                                        jumped up to see what was wrong and there, on his plate, gleaming in the curry gravy
                                        were small bits of broken glass. I hurried to the kitchen to confront Lamek with the plate.
                                        He explained that he had dropped the new and expensive bottle of curry powder on
                                        the brick floor of the kitchen. He did not tell me as he thought I would make a “shauri” so
                                        he simply scooped up the curry powder, removed the larger pieces of glass and used
                                        part of the powder for seasoning the lunch.

                                        The weather is getting warmer now. It was very cold in June and July and we had
                                        fires in the daytime as well as at night. Now that much of the land has been cleared we
                                        are able to go for pleasant walks in the weekends. My favourite spot is a waterfall on the
                                        Mchewe River just on the boundary of our land. There is a delightful little pool below the
                                        waterfall and one day George intends to stock it with trout.

                                        Now that there are more Europeans around to buy meat the natives find it worth
                                        their while to kill an occasional beast. Every now and again a native arrives with a large
                                        bowl of freshly killed beef for sale. One has no way of knowing whether the animal was
                                        healthy and the meat is often still warm and very bloody. I hated handling it at first but am
                                        becoming accustomed to it now and have even started a brine tub. There is no other
                                        way of keeping meat here and it can only be kept in its raw state for a few hours before
                                        going bad. One of the delicacies is the hump which all African cattle have. When corned
                                        it is like the best brisket.

                                        See what a housewife I am becoming.
                                        With much love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. Sept.6th. 1931

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        I have grown to love the life here and am sad to think I shall be leaving
                                        Tanganyika soon for several months. Yes I am coming down to have the baby in the
                                        bosom of the family. George thinks it best and so does the doctor. I didn’t mention it
                                        before but I have never recovered fully from the effects of that bad bout of malaria and
                                        so I have been persuaded to leave George and our home and go to the Cape, in the
                                        hope that I shall come back here as fit as when I first arrived in the country plus a really
                                        healthy and bouncing baby. I am torn two ways, I long to see you all – but how I would
                                        love to stay on here.

                                        George will drive me down to Northern Rhodesia in early October to catch a
                                        South bound train. I’ll telegraph the date of departure when I know it myself. The road is
                                        very, very bad and the car has been giving a good deal of trouble so, though the baby
                                        is not due until early February, George thinks it best to get the journey over soon as
                                        possible, for the rains break in November and the the roads will then be impassable. It
                                        may take us five or six days to reach Broken Hill as we will take it slowly. I am looking
                                        forward to the drive through new country and to camping out at night.
                                        Our days pass quietly by. George is out on the shamba most of the day. He
                                        goes out before breakfast on weekdays and spends most of the day working with the
                                        men – not only supervising but actually working with his hands and beating the labourers
                                        at their own jobs. He comes to the house for meals and tea breaks. I potter around the
                                        house and garden, sew, mend and read. Lamek continues to be a treasure. he turns out
                                        some surprising dishes. One of his specialities is stuffed chicken. He carefully skins the
                                        chicken removing all bones. He then minces all the chicken meat and adds minced onion
                                        and potatoes. He then stuffs the chicken skin with the minced meat and carefully sews it
                                        together again. The resulting dish is very filling because the boned chicken is twice the
                                        size of a normal one. It lies on its back as round as a football with bloated legs in the air.
                                        Rather repulsive to look at but Lamek is most proud of his accomplishment.
                                        The other day he produced another of his masterpieces – a cooked tortoise. It
                                        was served on a dish covered with parsley and crouched there sans shell but, only too
                                        obviously, a tortoise. I took one look and fled with heaving diaphragm, but George said
                                        it tasted quite good. He tells me that he has had queerer dishes produced by former
                                        cooks. He says that once in his hunting days his cook served up a skinned baby
                                        monkey with its hands folded on its breast. He says it would take a cannibal to eat that
                                        dish.

                                        And now for something sad. Poor old Llew died quite suddenly and it was a sad
                                        shock to this tiny community. We went across to the funeral and it was a very simple and
                                        dignified affair. Llew was buried on Joni’s farm in a grave dug by the farm boys. The
                                        body was wrapped in a blanket and bound to some boards and lowered into the
                                        ground. There was no service. The men just said “Good-bye Llew.” and “Sleep well
                                        Llew”, and things like that. Then Joni and his brother-in-law Max, and George shovelled
                                        soil over the body after which the grave was filled in by Joni’s shamba boys. It was a
                                        lovely bright afternoon and I thought how simple and sensible a funeral it was.
                                        I hope you will be glad to have me home. I bet Dad will be holding thumbs that
                                        the baby will be a girl.

                                        Very much love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Note
                                        “There are no letters to my family during the period of Sept. 1931 to June 1932
                                        because during these months I was living with my parents and sister in a suburb of
                                        Cape Town. I had hoped to return to Tanganyika by air with my baby soon after her
                                        birth in Feb.1932 but the doctor would not permit this.

                                        A month before my baby was born, a company called Imperial Airways, had
                                        started the first passenger service between South Africa and England. One of the night
                                        stops was at Mbeya near my husband’s coffee farm, and it was my intention to take the
                                        train to Broken Hill in Northern Rhodesia and to fly from there to Mbeya with my month
                                        old baby. In those days however, commercial flying was still a novelty and the doctor
                                        was not sure that flying at a high altitude might not have an adverse effect upon a young
                                        baby.

                                        He strongly advised me to wait until the baby was four months old and I did this
                                        though the long wait was very trying to my husband alone on our farm in Tanganyika,
                                        and to me, cherished though I was in my old home.

                                        My story, covering those nine long months is soon told. My husband drove me
                                        down from Mbeya to Broken Hill in NorthernRhodesia. The journey was tedious as the
                                        weather was very hot and dry and the road sandy and rutted, very different from the
                                        Great North road as it is today. The wooden wheel spokes of the car became so dry
                                        that they rattled and George had to bind wet rags around them. We had several
                                        punctures and with one thing and another I was lucky to catch the train.
                                        My parents were at Cape Town station to welcome me and I stayed
                                        comfortably with them, living very quietly, until my baby was born. She arrived exactly
                                        on the appointed day, Feb.8th.

                                        I wrote to my husband “Our Charmian Ann is a darling baby. She is very fair and
                                        rather pale and has the most exquisite hands, with long tapering fingers. Daddy
                                        absolutely dotes on her and so would you, if you were here. I can’t bear to think that you
                                        are so terribly far away. Although Ann was born exactly on the day, I was taken quite by
                                        surprise. It was awfully hot on the night before, and before going to bed I had a fancy for
                                        some water melon. The result was that when I woke in the early morning with labour
                                        pains and vomiting I thought it was just an attack of indigestion due to eating too much
                                        melon. The result was that I did not wake Marjorie until the pains were pretty frequent.
                                        She called our next door neighbour who, in his pyjamas, drove me to the nursing home
                                        at breakneck speed. The Matron was very peeved that I had left things so late but all
                                        went well and by nine o’clock, Mother, positively twittering with delight, was allowed to
                                        see me and her first granddaughter . She told me that poor Dad was in such a state of
                                        nerves that he was sick amongst the grapevines. He says that he could not bear to go
                                        through such an anxious time again, — so we will have to have our next eleven in
                                        Tanganyika!”

                                        The next four months passed rapidly as my time was taken up by the demands
                                        of my new baby. Dr. Trudy King’s method of rearing babies was then the vogue and I
                                        stuck fanatically to all the rules he laid down, to the intense exasperation of my parents
                                        who longed to cuddle the child.

                                        As the time of departure drew near my parents became more and more reluctant
                                        to allow me to face the journey alone with their adored grandchild, so my brother,
                                        Graham, very generously offered to escort us on the train to Broken Hill where he could
                                        put us on the plane for Mbeya.

                                        Eleanor Rushby

                                         

                                        Mchewe Estate. June 15th 1932

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        You’ll be glad to know that we arrived quite safe and sound and very, very
                                        happy to be home.The train Journey was uneventful. Ann slept nearly all the way.
                                        Graham was very kind and saw to everything. He even sat with the baby whilst I went
                                        to meals in the dining car.

                                        We were met at Broken Hill by the Thoms who had arranged accommodation for
                                        us at the hotel for the night. They also drove us to the aerodrome in the morning where
                                        the Airways agent told us that Ann is the first baby to travel by air on this section of the
                                        Cape to England route. The plane trip was very bumpy indeed especially between
                                        Broken Hill and Mpika. Everyone was ill including poor little Ann who sicked up her milk
                                        all over the front of my new coat. I arrived at Mbeya looking a sorry caricature of Radiant
                                        Motherhood. I must have been pale green and the baby was snow white. Under the
                                        circumstances it was a good thing that George did not meet us. We were met instead
                                        by Ken Menzies, the owner of the Mbeya Hotel where we spent the night. Ken was
                                        most fatherly and kind and a good nights rest restored Ann and me to our usual robust
                                        health.

                                        Mbeya has greatly changed. The hotel is now finished and can accommodate
                                        fifty guests. It consists of a large main building housing a large bar and dining room and
                                        offices and a number of small cottage bedrooms. It even has electric light. There are
                                        several buildings out at the aerodrome and private houses going up in Mbeya.
                                        After breakfast Ken Menzies drove us out to the farm where we had a warm
                                        welcome from George, who looks well but rather thin. The house was spotless and the
                                        new cook, Abel, had made light scones for tea. George had prepared all sorts of lovely
                                        surprises. There is a new reed ceiling in the living room and a new dresser gay with
                                        willow pattern plates which he had ordered from England. There is also a writing table
                                        and a square table by the door for visitors hats. More personal is a lovely model ship
                                        which George assembled from one of those Hobbie’s kits. It puts the finishing touch to
                                        the rather old world air of our living room.

                                        In the bedroom there is a large double bed which George made himself. It has
                                        strips of old car tyres nailed to a frame which makes a fine springy mattress and on top
                                        of this is a thick mattress of kapok.In the kitchen there is a good wood stove which
                                        George salvaged from a Mission dump. It looks a bit battered but works very well. The
                                        new cook is excellent. The only blight is that he will wear rubber soled tennis shoes and
                                        they smell awful. I daren’t hurt his feelings by pointing this out though. Opposite the
                                        kitchen is a new laundry building containing a forty gallon hot water drum and a sink for
                                        washing up. Lovely!

                                        George has been working very hard. He now has forty acres of coffee seedlings
                                        planted out and has also found time to plant a rose garden and fruit trees. There are
                                        orange and peach trees, tree tomatoes, paw paws, guavas and berries. He absolutely
                                        adores Ann who has been very good and does not seem at all unsettled by the long
                                        journey.

                                        It is absolutely heavenly to be back and I shall be happier than ever now that I
                                        have a baby to play with during the long hours when George is busy on the farm,
                                        Thank you for all your love and care during the many months I was with you. Ann
                                        sends a special bubble for granddad.

                                        Your very loving,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate Mbeya July 18th 1932

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        Ann at five months is enchanting. She is a very good baby, smiles readily and is
                                        gaining weight steadily. She doesn’t sleep much during the day but that does not
                                        matter, because, apart from washing her little things, I have nothing to do but attend to
                                        her. She sleeps very well at night which is a blessing as George has to get up very
                                        early to start work on the shamba and needs a good nights rest.
                                        My nights are not so good, because we are having a plague of rats which frisk
                                        around in the bedroom at night. Great big ones that come up out of the long grass in the
                                        gorge beside the house and make cosy homes on our reed ceiling and in the thatch of
                                        the roof.

                                        We always have a night light burning so that, if necessary, I can attend to Ann
                                        with a minimum of fuss, and the things I see in that dim light! There are gaps between
                                        the reeds and one night I heard, plop! and there, before my horrified gaze, lay a newly
                                        born hairless baby rat on the floor by the bed, plop, plop! and there lay two more.
                                        Quite dead, poor things – but what a careless mother.

                                        I have also seen rats scampering around on the tops of the mosquito nets and
                                        sometimes we have them on our bed. They have a lovely game. They swarm down
                                        the cord from which the mosquito net is suspended, leap onto the bed and onto the
                                        floor. We do not have our net down now the cold season is here and there are few
                                        mosquitoes.

                                        Last week a rat crept under Ann’s net which hung to the floor and bit her little
                                        finger, so now I tuck the net in under the mattress though it makes it difficult for me to
                                        attend to her at night. We shall have to get a cat somewhere. Ann’s pram has not yet
                                        arrived so George carries her when we go walking – to her great content.
                                        The native women around here are most interested in Ann. They come to see
                                        her, bearing small gifts, and usually bring a child or two with them. They admire my child
                                        and I admire theirs and there is an exchange of gifts. They produce a couple of eggs or
                                        a few bananas or perhaps a skinny fowl and I hand over sugar, salt or soap as they
                                        value these commodities. The most lavish gift went to the wife of Thomas our headman,
                                        who produced twin daughters in the same week as I had Ann.

                                        Our neighbours have all been across to welcome me back and to admire the
                                        baby. These include Marion Coster who came out to join her husband whilst I was in
                                        South Africa. The two Hickson-Wood children came over on a fat old white donkey.
                                        They made a pretty picture sitting astride, one behind the other – Maureen with her arms
                                        around small Michael’s waist. A native toto led the donkey and the children’ s ayah
                                        walked beside it.

                                        It is quite cold here now but the sun is bright and the air dry. The whole
                                        countryside is beautifully green and we are a very happy little family.

                                        Lots and lots of love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate August 11th 1932

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        George has been very unwell for the past week. He had a nasty gash on his
                                        knee which went septic. He had a swelling in the groin and a high temperature and could
                                        not sleep at night for the pain in his leg. Ann was very wakeful too during the same
                                        period, I think she is teething. I luckily have kept fit though rather harassed. Yesterday the
                                        leg looked so inflamed that George decided to open up the wound himself. he made
                                        quite a big cut in exactly the right place. You should have seen the blackish puss
                                        pouring out.

                                        After he had thoroughly cleaned the wound George sewed it up himself. he has
                                        the proper surgical needles and gut. He held the cut together with his left hand and
                                        pushed the needle through the flesh with his right. I pulled the needle out and passed it
                                        to George for the next stitch. I doubt whether a surgeon could have made a neater job
                                        of it. He is still confined to the couch but today his temperature is normal. Some
                                        husband!

                                        The previous week was hectic in another way. We had a visit from lions! George
                                        and I were having supper about 8.30 on Tuesday night when the back verandah was
                                        suddenly invaded by women and children from the servants quarters behind the kitchen.
                                        They were all yelling “Simba, Simba.” – simba means lions. The door opened suddenly
                                        and the houseboy rushed in to say that there were lions at the huts. George got up
                                        swiftly, fetched gun and ammunition from the bedroom and with the houseboy carrying
                                        the lamp, went off to investigate. I remained at the table, carrying on with my supper as I
                                        felt a pioneer’s wife should! Suddenly something big leapt through the open window
                                        behind me. You can imagine what I thought! I know now that it is quite true to say one’s
                                        hair rises when one is scared. However it was only Kelly, our huge Irish wolfhound,
                                        taking cover.

                                        George returned quite soon to say that apparently the commotion made by the
                                        women and children had frightened the lions off. He found their tracks in the soft earth
                                        round the huts and a bag of maize that had been playfully torn open but the lions had
                                        moved on.

                                        Next day we heard that they had moved to Hickson-Wood’s shamba. Hicky
                                        came across to say that the lions had jumped over the wall of his cattle boma and killed
                                        both his white Muskat riding donkeys.
                                        He and a friend sat up all next night over the remains but the lions did not return to
                                        the kill.

                                        Apart from the little set back last week, Ann is blooming. She has a cap of very
                                        fine fair hair and clear blue eyes under straight brow. She also has lovely dimples in both
                                        cheeks. We are very proud of her.

                                        Our neighbours are picking coffee but the crops are small and the price is low. I
                                        am amazed that they are so optimistic about the future. No one in these parts ever
                                        seems to grouse though all are living on capital. They all say “Well if the worst happens
                                        we can always go up to the Lupa Diggings.”

                                        Don’t worry about us, we have enough to tide us over for some time yet.

                                        Much love to all,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 28th Sept. 1932

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        News! News! I’m going to have another baby. George and I are delighted and I
                                        hope it will be a boy this time. I shall be able to have him at Mbeya because things are
                                        rapidly changing here. Several German families have moved to Mbeya including a
                                        German doctor who means to build a hospital there. I expect he will make a very good
                                        living because there must now be some hundreds of Europeans within a hundred miles
                                        radius of Mbeya. The Europeans are mostly British or German but there are also
                                        Greeks and, I believe, several other nationalities are represented on the Lupa Diggings.
                                        Ann is blooming and developing according to the Book except that she has no
                                        teeth yet! Kath Hickson-Wood has given her a very nice high chair and now she has
                                        breakfast and lunch at the table with us. Everything within reach goes on the floor to her
                                        amusement and my exasperation!

                                        You ask whether we have any Church of England missionaries in our part. No we
                                        haven’t though there are Lutheran and Roman Catholic Missions. I have never even
                                        heard of a visiting Church of England Clergyman to these parts though there are babies
                                        in plenty who have not been baptised. Jolly good thing I had Ann Christened down
                                        there.

                                        The R.C. priests in this area are called White Fathers. They all have beards and
                                        wear white cassocks and sun helmets. One, called Father Keiling, calls around frequently.
                                        Though none of us in this area is Catholic we take it in turn to put him up for the night. The
                                        Catholic Fathers in their turn are most hospitable to travellers regardless of their beliefs.
                                        Rather a sad thing has happened. Lucas our old chicken-boy is dead. I shall miss
                                        his toothy smile. George went to the funeral and fired two farewell shots from his rifle
                                        over the grave – a gesture much appreciated by the locals. Lucas in his day was a good
                                        hunter.

                                        Several of the locals own muzzle loading guns but the majority hunt with dogs
                                        and spears. The dogs wear bells which make an attractive jingle but I cannot bear the
                                        idea of small antelope being run down until they are exhausted before being clubbed of
                                        stabbed to death. We seldom eat venison as George does not care to shoot buck.
                                        Recently though, he shot an eland and Abel rendered down the fat which is excellent for
                                        cooking and very like beef fat.

                                        Much love to all,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. P.O.Mbeya 21st November 1932

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        George has gone off to the Lupa for a week with John Molteno. John came up
                                        here with the idea of buying a coffee farm but he has changed his mind and now thinks of
                                        staking some claims on the diggings and also setting up as a gold buyer.

                                        Did I tell you about his arrival here? John and George did some elephant hunting
                                        together in French Equatorial Africa and when John heard that George had married and
                                        settled in Tanganyika, he also decided to come up here. He drove up from Cape Town
                                        in a Baby Austin and arrived just as our labourers were going home for the day. The little
                                        car stopped half way up our hill and John got out to investigate. You should have heard
                                        the astonished exclamations when John got out – all 6 ft 5 ins. of him! He towered over
                                        the little car and even to me it seemed impossible for him to have made the long
                                        journey in so tiny a car.

                                        Kath Wood has been over several times lately. She is slim and looks so right in
                                        the shirt and corduroy slacks she almost always wears. She was here yesterday when
                                        the shamba boy, digging in the front garden, unearthed a large earthenware cooking pot,
                                        sealed at the top. I was greatly excited and had an instant mental image of fabulous
                                        wealth. We made the boy bring the pot carefully on to the verandah and opened it in
                                        happy anticipation. What do you think was inside? Nothing but a grinning skull! Such a
                                        treat for a pregnant female.

                                        We have a tree growing here that had lovely straight branches covered by a
                                        smooth bark. I got the garden boy to cut several of these branches of a uniform size,
                                        peeled off the bark and have made Ann a playpen with the poles which are much like
                                        broom sticks. Now I can leave her unattended when I do my chores. The other morning
                                        after breakfast I put Ann in her playpen on the verandah and gave her a piece of toast
                                        and honey to keep her quiet whilst I laundered a few of her things. When I looked out a
                                        little later I was horrified to see a number of bees buzzing around her head whilst she
                                        placidly concentrated on her toast. I made a rapid foray and rescued her but I still don’t
                                        know whether that was the thing to do.

                                        We all send our love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mbeya Hospital. April 25th. 1933

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        Here I am, installed at the very new hospital, built by Dr Eckhardt, awaiting the
                                        arrival of the new baby. George has gone back to the farm on foot but will walk in again
                                        to spend the weekend with us. Ann is with me and enjoys the novelty of playing with
                                        other children. The Eckhardts have two, a pretty little girl of two and a half and a very fair
                                        roly poly boy of Ann’s age. Ann at fourteen months is very active. She is quite a little girl
                                        now with lovely dimples. She walks well but is backward in teething.

                                        George, Ann and I had a couple of days together at the hotel before I moved in
                                        here and several of the local women visited me and have promised to visit me in
                                        hospital. The trip from farm to town was very entertaining if not very comfortable. There
                                        is ten miles of very rough road between our farm and Utengule Mission and beyond the
                                        Mission there is a fair thirteen or fourteen mile road to Mbeya.

                                        As we have no car now the doctor’s wife offered to drive us from the Mission to
                                        Mbeya but she would not risk her car on the road between the Mission and our farm.
                                        The upshot was that I rode in the Hickson-Woods machila for that ten mile stretch. The
                                        machila is a canopied hammock, slung from a bamboo pole, in which I reclined, not too
                                        comfortably in my unwieldy state, with Ann beside me or sometime straddling me. Four
                                        of our farm boys carried the machila on their shoulders, two fore and two aft. The relief
                                        bearers walked on either side. There must have been a dozen in all and they sang a sort
                                        of sea shanty song as they walked. One man would sing a verse and the others took up
                                        the chorus. They often improvise as they go. They moaned about my weight (at least
                                        George said so! I don’t follow Ki-Swahili well yet) and expressed the hope that I would
                                        have a son and that George would reward them handsomely.

                                        George and Kelly, the dog, followed close behind the machila and behind
                                        George came Abel our cook and his wife and small daughter Annalie, all in their best
                                        attire. The cook wore a palm beach suit, large Terai hat and sunglasses and two colour
                                        shoes and quite lent a tone to the proceedings! Right at the back came the rag tag and
                                        bobtail who joined the procession just for fun.

                                        Mrs Eckhardt was already awaiting us at the Mission when we arrived and we had
                                        an uneventful trip to the Mbeya Hotel.

                                        During my last week at the farm I felt very tired and engaged the cook’s small
                                        daughter, Annalie, to amuse Ann for an hour after lunch so that I could have a rest. They
                                        played in the small verandah room which adjoins our bedroom and where I keep all my
                                        sewing materials. One afternoon I was startled by a scream from Ann. I rushed to the
                                        room and found Ann with blood steaming from her cheek. Annalie knelt beside her,
                                        looking startled and frightened, with my embroidery scissors in her hand. She had cut off
                                        half of the long curling golden lashes on one of Ann’s eyelids and, in trying to finish the
                                        job, had cut off a triangular flap of skin off Ann’s cheek bone.

                                        I called Abel, the cook, and demanded that he should chastise his daughter there and
                                        then and I soon heard loud shrieks from behind the kitchen. He spanked her with a
                                        bamboo switch but I am sure not as well as she deserved. Africans are very tolerant
                                        towards their children though I have seen husbands and wives fighting furiously.
                                        I feel very well but long to have the confinement over.

                                        Very much love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mbeya Hospital. 2nd May 1933.

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        Little George arrived at 7.30 pm on Saturday evening 29 th. April. George was
                                        with me at the time as he had walked in from the farm for news, and what a wonderful bit
                                        of luck that was. The doctor was away on a case on the Diggings and I was bathing Ann
                                        with George looking on, when the pains started. George dried Ann and gave her
                                        supper and put her to bed. Afterwards he sat on the steps outside my room and a
                                        great comfort it was to know that he was there.

                                        The confinement was short but pretty hectic. The Doctor returned to the Hospital
                                        just in time to deliver the baby. He is a grand little boy, beautifully proportioned. The
                                        doctor says he has never seen a better formed baby. He is however rather funny
                                        looking just now as his head is, very temporarily, egg shaped. He has a shock of black
                                        silky hair like a gollywog and believe it or not, he has a slight black moustache.
                                        George came in, looked at the baby, looked at me, and we both burst out
                                        laughing. The doctor was shocked and said so. He has no sense of humour and couldn’t
                                        understand that we, though bursting with pride in our son, could never the less laugh at
                                        him.

                                        Friends in Mbeya have sent me the most gorgeous flowers and my room is
                                        transformed with delphiniums, roses and carnations. The room would be very austere
                                        without the flowers. Curtains, bedspread and enamelware, walls and ceiling are all
                                        snowy white.

                                        George hired a car and took Ann home next day. I have little George for
                                        company during the day but he is removed at night. I am longing to get him home and
                                        away from the German nurse who feeds him on black tea when he cries. She insists that
                                        tea is a medicine and good for him.

                                        Much love from a proud mother of two.
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate 12May 1933

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        We are all together at home again and how lovely it feels. Even the house
                                        servants seem pleased. The boy had decorated the lounge with sprays of
                                        bougainvillaea and Abel had backed one of his good sponge cakes.

                                        Ann looked fat and rosy but at first was only moderately interested in me and the
                                        new baby but she soon thawed. George is good with her and will continue to dress Ann
                                        in the mornings and put her to bed until I am satisfied with Georgie.

                                        He, poor mite, has a nasty rash on face and neck. I am sure it is just due to that
                                        tea the nurse used to give him at night. He has lost his moustache and is fast loosing his
                                        wild black hair and emerging as quite a handsome babe. He is a very masculine looking
                                        infant with much more strongly marked eyebrows and a larger nose that Ann had. He is
                                        very good and lies quietly in his basket even when awake.

                                        George has been making a hatching box for brown trout ova and has set it up in
                                        a small clear stream fed by a spring in readiness for the ova which is expected from
                                        South Africa by next weeks plane. Some keen fishermen from Mbeya and the District
                                        have clubbed together to buy the ova. The fingerlings are later to be transferred to
                                        streams in Mbeya and Tukuyu Districts.

                                        I shall now have my hands full with the two babies and will not have much time for the
                                        garden, or I fear, for writing very long letters. Remember though, that no matter how
                                        large my family becomes, I shall always love you as much as ever.

                                        Your affectionate,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 14th June 1933

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        The four of us are all well but alas we have lost our dear Kelly. He was rather a
                                        silly dog really, although he grew so big he retained all his puppy ways but we were all
                                        very fond of him, especially George because Kelly attached himself to George whilst I
                                        was away having Ann and from that time on he was George’s shadow. I think he had
                                        some form of biliary fever. He died stretched out on the living room couch late last night,
                                        with George sitting beside him so that he would not feel alone.

                                        The children are growing fast. Georgie is a darling. He now has a fluff of pale
                                        brown hair and his eyes are large and dark brown. Ann is very plump and fair.
                                        We have had several visitors lately. Apart from neighbours, a car load of diggers
                                        arrived one night and John Molteno and his bride were here. She is a very attractive girl
                                        but, I should say, more suited to life in civilisation than in this back of beyond. She has
                                        gone out to the diggings with her husband and will have to walk a good stretch of the fifty
                                        or so miles.

                                        The diggers had to sleep in the living room on the couch and on hastily erected
                                        camp beds. They arrived late at night and left after breakfast next day. One had half a
                                        beard, the other side of his face had been forcibly shaved in the bar the night before.

                                        your affectionate,
                                        Eleanor

                                        Mchewe Estate. August 10 th. 1933

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        George is away on safari with two Indian Army officers. The money he will get for
                                        his services will be very welcome because this coffee growing is a slow business, and
                                        our capitol is rapidly melting away. The job of acting as White Hunter was unexpected
                                        or George would not have taken on the job of hatching the ova which duly arrived from
                                        South Africa.

                                        George and the District Commissioner, David Pollock, went to meet the plane
                                        by which the ova had been consigned but the pilot knew nothing about the package. It
                                        came to light in the mail bag with the parcels! However the ova came to no harm. David
                                        Pollock and George brought the parcel to the farm and carefully transferred the ova to
                                        the hatching box. It was interesting to watch the tiny fry hatch out – a process which took
                                        several days. Many died in the process and George removed the dead by sucking
                                        them up in a glass tube.

                                        When hatched, the tiny fry were fed on ant eggs collected by the boys. I had to
                                        take over the job of feeding and removing the dead when George left on safari. The fry
                                        have to be fed every four hours, like the baby, so each time I have fed Georgie. I hurry
                                        down to feed the trout.

                                        The children are very good but keep me busy. Ann can now say several words
                                        and understands more. She adores Georgie. I long to show them off to you.

                                        Very much love
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. October 27th 1933

                                        Dear Family,

                                        All just over flu. George and Ann were very poorly. I did not fare so badly and
                                        Georgie came off best. He is on a bottle now.

                                        There was some excitement here last Wednesday morning. At 6.30 am. I called
                                        for boiling water to make Georgie’s food. No water arrived but muffled shouting and the
                                        sound of blows came from the kitchen. I went to investigate and found a fierce fight in
                                        progress between the house boy and the kitchen boy. In my efforts to make them stop
                                        fighting I went too close and got a sharp bang on the mouth with the edge of an
                                        enamelled plate the kitchen boy was using as a weapon. My teeth cut my lip inside and
                                        the plate cut it outside and blood flowed from mouth to chin. The boys were petrified.
                                        By the time I had fed Georgie the lip was stiff and swollen. George went in wrath
                                        to the kitchen and by breakfast time both house boy and kitchen boy had swollen faces
                                        too. Since then I have a kettle of boiling water to hand almost before the words are out
                                        of my mouth. I must say that the fight was because the house boy had clouted the
                                        kitchen boy for keeping me waiting! In this land of piece work it is the job of the kitchen
                                        boy to light the fire and boil the kettle but the houseboy’s job to carry the kettle to me.
                                        I have seen little of Kath Wood or Marion Coster for the past two months. Major
                                        Jones is the neighbour who calls most regularly. He has a wireless set and calls on all of
                                        us to keep us up to date with world as well as local news. He often brings oranges for
                                        Ann who adores him. He is a very nice person but no oil painting and makes no effort to
                                        entertain Ann but she thinks he is fine. Perhaps his monocle appeals to her.

                                        George has bought a six foot long galvanised bath which is a great improvement
                                        on the smaller oval one we have used until now. The smaller one had grown battered
                                        from much use and leaks like a sieve. Fortunately our bathroom has a cement floor,
                                        because one had to fill the bath to the brim and then bath extremely quickly to avoid
                                        being left high and dry.

                                        Lots and lots of love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. P.O. Mbeya 1st December 1933

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        Ann has not been well. We think she has had malaria. She has grown a good
                                        deal lately and looks much thinner and rather pale. Georgie is thriving and has such
                                        sparkling brown eyes and a ready smile. He and Ann make a charming pair, one so fair
                                        and the other dark.

                                        The Moltenos’ spent a few days here and took Georgie and me to Mbeya so
                                        that Georgie could be vaccinated. However it was an unsatisfactory trip because the
                                        doctor had no vaccine.

                                        George went to the Lupa with the Moltenos and returned to the farm in their Baby
                                        Austin which they have lent to us for a week. This was to enable me to go to Mbeya to
                                        have a couple of teeth filled by a visiting dentist.

                                        We went to Mbeya in the car on Saturday. It was quite a squash with the four of
                                        us on the front seat of the tiny car. Once George grabbed the babies foot instead of the
                                        gear knob! We had Georgie vaccinated at the hospital and then went to the hotel where
                                        the dentist was installed. Mr Dare, the dentist, had few instruments and they were very
                                        tarnished. I sat uncomfortably on a kitchen chair whilst he tinkered with my teeth. He filled
                                        three but two of the fillings came out that night. This meant another trip to Mbeya in the
                                        Baby Austin but this time they seem all right.

                                        The weather is very hot and dry and the garden a mess. We are having trouble
                                        with the young coffee trees too. Cut worms are killing off seedlings in the nursery and
                                        there is a borer beetle in the planted out coffee.

                                        George bought a large grey donkey from some wandering Masai and we hope
                                        the children will enjoy riding it later on.

                                        Very much love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 14th February 1934.

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        You will be sorry to hear that little Ann has been very ill, indeed we were terribly
                                        afraid that we were going to lose her. She enjoyed her birthday on the 8th. All the toys
                                        you, and her English granny, sent were unwrapped with such delight. However next
                                        day she seemed listless and a bit feverish so I tucked her up in bed after lunch. I dosed
                                        her with quinine and aspirin and she slept fitfully. At about eleven o’clock I was
                                        awakened by a strange little cry. I turned up the night light and was horrified to see that
                                        Ann was in a convulsion. I awakened George who, as always in an emergency, was
                                        perfectly calm and practical. He filled the small bath with very warm water and emersed
                                        Ann in it, placing a cold wet cloth on her head. We then wrapped her in blankets and
                                        gave her an enema and she settled down to sleep. A few hours later we had the same
                                        thing over again.

                                        At first light we sent a runner to Mbeya to fetch the doctor but waited all day in
                                        vain and in the evening the runner returned to say that the doctor had gone to a case on
                                        the diggings. Ann had been feverish all day with two or three convulsions. Neither
                                        George or I wished to leave the bedroom, but there was Georgie to consider, and in
                                        the afternoon I took him out in the garden for a while whilst George sat with Ann.
                                        That night we both sat up all night and again Ann had those wretched attacks of
                                        convulsions. George and I were worn out with anxiety by the time the doctor arrived the
                                        next afternoon. Ann had not been able to keep down any quinine and had had only
                                        small sips of water since the onset of the attack.

                                        The doctor at once diagnosed the trouble as malaria aggravated by teething.
                                        George held Ann whilst the Doctor gave her an injection. At the first attempt the needle
                                        bent into a bow, George was furious! The second attempt worked and after a few hours
                                        Ann’s temperature dropped and though she was ill for two days afterwards she is now
                                        up and about. She has also cut the last of her baby teeth, thank God. She looks thin and
                                        white, but should soon pick up. It has all been a great strain to both of us. Georgie
                                        behaved like an angel throughout. He played happily in his cot and did not seem to
                                        sense any tension as people say, babies do. Our baby was cheerful and not at all
                                        subdued.

                                        This is the rainy season and it is a good thing that some work has been done on
                                        our road or the doctor might not have got through.

                                        Much love to all,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 1st October 1934

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        We are all well now, thank goodness, but last week Georgie gave us such a
                                        fright. I was sitting on the verandah, busy with some sewing and not watching Ann and
                                        Georgie, who were trying to reach a bunch of bananas which hung on a rope from a
                                        beam of the verandah. Suddenly I heard a crash, Georgie had fallen backward over the
                                        edge of the verandah and hit the back of his head on the edge of the brick furrow which
                                        carries away the rainwater. He lay flat on his back with his arms spread out and did not
                                        move or cry. When I picked him up he gave a little whimper, I carried him to his cot and
                                        bathed his face and soon he began sitting up and appeared quite normal. The trouble
                                        began after he had vomited up his lunch. He began to whimper and bang his head
                                        against the cot.

                                        George and I were very worried because we have no transport so we could not
                                        take Georgie to the doctor and we could not bear to go through again what we had gone
                                        through with Ann earlier in the year. Then, in the late afternoon, a miracle happened. Two
                                        men George hardly knew, and complete strangers to me, called in on their way from the
                                        diggings to Mbeya and they kindly drove Georgie and me to the hospital. The Doctor
                                        allowed me to stay with Georgie and we spent five days there. Luckily he responded to
                                        treatment and is now as alive as ever. Children do put years on one!

                                        There is nothing much else to report. We have a new vegetable garden which is
                                        doing well but the earth here is strange. Gardens seem to do well for two years but by
                                        that time the soil is exhausted and one must move the garden somewhere else. The
                                        coffee looks well but it will be another year before we can expect even a few bags of
                                        coffee and prices are still low. Anyway by next year George should have some good
                                        return for all his hard work.

                                        Lots of love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. November 4th 1934

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        George is home from his White Hunting safari looking very sunburnt and well.
                                        The elderly American, who was his client this time, called in here at the farm to meet me
                                        and the children. It is amazing what spirit these old lads have! This one looked as though
                                        he should be thinking in terms of slippers and an armchair but no, he thinks in terms of
                                        high powered rifles with telescopic sights.

                                        It is lovely being together again and the children are delighted to have their Dad
                                        home. Things are always exciting when George is around. The day after his return
                                        George said at breakfast, “We can’t go on like this. You and the kids never get off the
                                        shamba. We’ll simply have to get a car.” You should have heard the excitement. “Get a
                                        car Daddy?’” cried Ann jumping in her chair so that her plaits bounced. “Get a car
                                        Daddy?” echoed Georgie his brown eyes sparkling. “A car,” said I startled, “However
                                        can we afford one?”

                                        “Well,” said George, “on my way back from Safari I heard that a car is to be sold
                                        this week at the Tukuyu Court, diseased estate or bankruptcy or something, I might get it
                                        cheap and it is an A.C.” The name meant nothing to me, but George explained that an
                                        A.C. is first cousin to a Rolls Royce.

                                        So off he went to the sale and next day the children and I listened all afternoon for
                                        the sound of an approaching car. We had many false alarms but, towards evening we
                                        heard what appeared to be the roar of an aeroplane engine. It was the A.C. roaring her
                                        way up our steep hill with a long plume of steam waving gaily above her radiator.
                                        Out jumped my beaming husband and in no time at all, he was showing off her
                                        points to an admiring family. Her lines are faultless and seats though worn are most
                                        comfortable. She has a most elegant air so what does it matter that the radiator leaks like
                                        a sieve, her exhaust pipe has broken off, her tyres are worn almost to the canvas and
                                        she has no windscreen. She goes, and she cost only five pounds.

                                        Next afternoon George, the kids and I piled into the car and drove along the road
                                        on lookout for guinea fowl. All went well on the outward journey but on the homeward
                                        one the poor A.C. simply gasped and died. So I carried the shot gun and George
                                        carried both children and we trailed sadly home. This morning George went with a bunch
                                        of farmhands and brought her home. Truly temperamental, she came home literally
                                        under her own steam.

                                        George now plans to get a second hand engine and radiator for her but it won’t
                                        be an A.C. engine. I think she is the only one of her kind in the country.
                                        I am delighted to hear, dad, that you are sending a bridle for Joseph for
                                        Christmas. I am busy making a saddle out of an old piece of tent canvas stuffed with
                                        kapok, some webbing and some old rug straps. A car and a riding donkey! We’re
                                        definitely carriage folk now.

                                        Lots of love to all,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 28th December 1934

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        Thank you for the wonderful Christmas parcel. My frock is a splendid fit. George
                                        declares that no one can knit socks like Mummy and the children love their toys and new
                                        clothes.

                                        Joseph, the donkey, took his bit with an air of bored resignation and Ann now
                                        rides proudly on his back. Joseph is a big strong animal with the looks and disposition of
                                        a mule. he will not go at all unless a native ‘toto’ walks before him and when he does go
                                        he wears a pained expression as though he were carrying fourteen stone instead of
                                        Ann’s fly weight. I walk beside the donkey carrying Georgie and our cat, ‘Skinny Winnie’,
                                        follows behind. Quite a cavalcade. The other day I got so exasperated with Joseph that
                                        I took Ann off and I got on. Joseph tottered a few paces and sat down! to the huge
                                        delight of our farm labourers who were going home from work. Anyway, one good thing,
                                        the donkey is so lazy that there is little chance of him bolting with Ann.

                                        The Moltenos spent Christmas with us and left for the Lupa Diggings yesterday.
                                        They arrived on the 22nd. with gifts for the children and chocolates and beer. That very
                                        afternoon George and John Molteno left for Ivuna, near Lake Ruckwa, to shoot some
                                        guinea fowl and perhaps a goose for our Christmas dinner. We expected the menfolk
                                        back on Christmas Eve and Anne and I spent a busy day making mince pies and
                                        sausage rolls. Why I don’t know, because I am sure Abel could have made them better.
                                        We decorated the Christmas tree and sat up very late but no husbands turned up.
                                        Christmas day passed but still no husbands came. Anne, like me, is expecting a baby
                                        and we both felt pretty forlorn and cross. Anne was certain that they had been caught up
                                        in a party somewhere and had forgotten all about us and I must say when Boxing Day
                                        went by and still George and John did not show up I felt ready to agree with her.
                                        They turned up towards evening and explained that on the homeward trip the car
                                        had bogged down in the mud and that they had spent a miserable Christmas. Anne
                                        refused to believe their story so George, to prove their case, got the game bag and
                                        tipped the contents on to the dining room table. Out fell several guinea fowl, long past
                                        being edible, followed by a large goose so high that it was green and blue where all the
                                        feathers had rotted off.

                                        The stench was too much for two pregnant girls. I shot out of the front door
                                        closely followed by Anne and we were both sick in the garden.

                                        I could not face food that evening but Anne is made of stronger stuff and ate her
                                        belated Christmas dinner with relish.

                                        I am looking forward enormously to having Marjorie here with us. She will be able
                                        to carry back to you an eyewitness account of our home and way of life.

                                        Much love to you all,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 5th January 1935

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        You cannot imagine how lovely it is to have Marjorie here. She came just in time
                                        because I have had pernicious vomiting and have lost a great deal of weight and she
                                        took charge of the children and made me spend three days in hospital having treatment.
                                        George took me to the hospital on the afternoon of New Years Eve and decided
                                        to spend the night at the hotel and join in the New Years Eve celebrations. I had several
                                        visitors at the hospital that evening and George actually managed to get some imported
                                        grapes for me. He returned to the farm next morning and fetched me from the hospital
                                        four days later. Of course the old A.C. just had to play up. About half way home the
                                        back axle gave in and we had to send a passing native some miles back to a place
                                        called Mbalizi to hire a lorry from a Greek trader to tow us home to the farm.
                                        The children looked well and were full of beans. I think Marjorie was thankful to
                                        hand them over to me. She is delighted with Ann’s motherly little ways but Georgie she
                                        calls “a really wild child”. He isn’t, just has such an astonishing amount of energy and is
                                        always up to mischief. Marjorie brought us all lovely presents. I am so thrilled with my
                                        sewing machine. It may be an old model but it sews marvellously. We now have an
                                        Alsatian pup as well as Joseph the donkey and the two cats.

                                        Marjorie had a midnight encounter with Joseph which gave her quite a shock but
                                        we had a good laugh about it next day. Some months ago George replaced our wattle
                                        and daub outside pit lavatory by a substantial brick one, so large that Joseph is being
                                        temporarily stabled in it at night. We neglected to warn Marj about this and one night,
                                        storm lamp in hand, she opened the door and Joseph walked out braying his thanks.
                                        I am afraid Marjorie is having a quiet time, a shame when the journey from Cape
                                        Town is so expensive. The doctor has told me to rest as much as I can, so it is
                                        impossible for us to take Marj on sight seeing trips.

                                        I hate to think that she will be leaving in ten days time.

                                        Much love,
                                        Eleanor.

                                        Mchewe Estate. 18th February 1935

                                        Dearest Family,

                                        You must be able to visualise our life here quite well now that Marj is back and
                                        has no doubt filled in all the details I forget to mention in my letters. What a journey we
                                        had in the A.C. when we took her to the plane. George, the children and I sat in front and
                                        Marj sat behind with numerous four gallon tins of water for the insatiable radiator. It was
                                        raining and the canvas hood was up but part of the side flaps are missing and as there is
                                        no glass in the windscreen the rain blew in on us. George got fed up with constantly
                                        removing the hot radiator cap so simply stuffed a bit of rag in instead. When enough
                                        steam had built up in the radiator behind the rag it blew out and we started all over again.
                                        The car still roars like an aeroplane engine and yet has little power so that George sent
                                        gangs of boys to the steep hills between the farm and the Mission to give us a push if
                                        necessary. Fortunately this time it was not, and the boys cheered us on our way. We
                                        needed their help on the homeward journey however.

                                        George has now bought an old Chev engine which he means to install before I
                                        have to go to hospital to have my new baby. It will be quite an engineering feet as
                                        George has few tools.

                                        I am sorry to say that I am still not well, something to do with kidneys or bladder.
                                        George bought me some pills from one of the several small shops which have opened
                                        in Mbeya and Ann is most interested in the result. She said seriously to Kath Wood,
                                        “Oh my Mummy is a very clever Mummy. She can do blue wee and green wee as well
                                        as yellow wee.” I simply can no longer manage the children without help and have
                                        engaged the cook’s wife, Janey, to help. The children are by no means thrilled. I plead in
                                        vain that I am not well enough to go for walks. Ann says firmly, “Ann doesn’t want to go
                                        for a walk. Ann will look after you.” Funny, though she speaks well for a three year old,
                                        she never uses the first person. Georgie say he would much rather walk with
                                        Keshokutwa, the kitchen boy. His name by the way, means day-after-tomorrow and it
                                        suits him down to the ground, Kath Wood walks over sometimes with offers of help and Ann will gladly go walking with her but Georgie won’t. He on the other hand will walk with Anne Molteno
                                        and Ann won’t. They are obstinate kids. Ann has developed a very fertile imagination.
                                        She has probably been looking at too many of those nice women’s magazines you
                                        sent. A few days ago she said, “You are sick Mummy, but Ann’s got another Mummy.
                                        She’s not sick, and my other mummy (very smugly) has lovely golden hair”. This
                                        morning’ not ten minutes after I had dressed her, she came in with her frock wet and
                                        muddy. I said in exasperation, “Oh Ann, you are naughty.” To which she instantly
                                        returned, “My other Mummy doesn’t think I am naughty. She thinks I am very nice.” It
                                        strikes me I shall have to get better soon so that I can be gay once more and compete
                                        with that phantom golden haired paragon.

                                        We had a very heavy storm over the farm last week. There was heavy rain with
                                        hail which stripped some of the coffee trees and the Mchewe River flooded and the
                                        water swept through the lower part of the shamba. After the water had receded George
                                        picked up a fine young trout which had been stranded. This was one of some he had
                                        put into the river when Georgie was a few months old.

                                        The trials of a coffee farmer are legion. We now have a plague of snails. They
                                        ring bark the young trees and leave trails of slime on the glossy leaves. All the ring
                                        barked trees will have to be cut right back and this is heartbreaking as they are bearing
                                        berries for the first time. The snails are collected by native children, piled upon the
                                        ground and bashed to a pulp which gives off a sickening stench. I am sorry for the local
                                        Africans. Locusts ate up their maize and now they are losing their bean crop to the snails.

                                        Lots of love, Eleanor

                                        #6260
                                        TracyTracy
                                        Participant

                                          From Tanganyika with Love

                                          With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                          • “The letters of Eleanor Dunbar Leslie to her parents and her sister in South Africa
                                            concerning her life with George Gilman Rushby of Tanganyika, and the trials and
                                            joys of bringing up a family in pioneering conditions.

                                          These letters were transcribed from copies of letters typed by Eleanor Rushby from
                                          the originals which were in the estate of Marjorie Leslie, Eleanor’s sister. Eleanor
                                          kept no diary of her life in Tanganyika, so these letters were the living record of an
                                          important part of her life.

                                          Prelude
                                          Having walked across Africa from the East coast to Ubangi Shauri Chad
                                          in French Equatorial Africa, hunting elephant all the way, George Rushby
                                          made his way down the Congo to Leopoldville. He then caught a ship to
                                          Europe and had a holiday in Brussels and Paris before visiting his family
                                          in England. He developed blackwater fever and was extremely ill for a
                                          while. When he recovered he went to London to arrange his return to
                                          Africa.

                                          Whilst staying at the Overseas Club he met Eileen Graham who had come
                                          to England from Cape Town to study music. On hearing that George was
                                          sailing for Cape Town she arranged to introduce him to her friend
                                          Eleanor Dunbar Leslie. “You’ll need someone lively to show you around,”
                                          she said. “She’s as smart as paint, a keen mountaineer, a very good school
                                          teacher, and she’s attractive. You can’t miss her, because her father is a
                                          well known Cape Town Magistrate. And,” she added “I’ve already written
                                          and told her what ship you are arriving on.”

                                          Eleanor duly met the ship. She and George immediately fell in love.
                                          Within thirty six hours he had proposed marriage and was accepted
                                          despite the misgivings of her parents. As she was under contract to her
                                          High School, she remained in South Africa for several months whilst
                                          George headed for Tanganyika looking for a farm where he could build
                                          their home.

                                          These details are a summary of chapter thirteen of the Biography of
                                          George Gilman Rushby ‘The Hunter is Death “ by T.V.Bulpin.

                                           

                                          Dearest Marj,
                                          Terrifically exciting news! I’ve just become engaged to an Englishman whom I
                                          met last Monday. The result is a family upheaval which you will have no difficulty in
                                          imagining!!

                                          The Aunts think it all highly romantic and cry in delight “Now isn’t that just like our
                                          El!” Mummy says she doesn’t know what to think, that anyway I was always a harum
                                          scarum and she rather expected something like this to happen. However I know that
                                          she thinks George highly attractive. “Such a nice smile and gentle manner, and such
                                          good hands“ she murmurs appreciatively. “But WHY AN ELEPHANT HUNTER?” she
                                          ends in a wail, as though elephant hunting was an unmentionable profession.
                                          Anyway I don’t think so. Anyone can marry a bank clerk or a lawyer or even a
                                          millionaire – but whoever heard of anyone marrying anyone as exciting as an elephant
                                          hunter? I’m thrilled to bits.

                                          Daddy also takes a dim view of George’s profession, and of George himself as
                                          a husband for me. He says that I am so impulsive and have such wild enthusiasms that I
                                          need someone conservative and steady to give me some serenity and some ballast.
                                          Dad says George is a handsome fellow and a good enough chap he is sure, but
                                          he is obviously a man of the world and hints darkly at a possible PAST. George says
                                          he has nothing of the kind and anyway I’m the first girl he has asked to marry him. I don’t
                                          care anyway, I’d gladly marry him tomorrow, but Dad has other ideas.

                                          He sat in his armchair to deliver his verdict, wearing the same look he must wear
                                          on the bench. If we marry, and he doesn’t think it would be a good thing, George must
                                          buy a comfortable house for me in Central Africa where I can stay safely when he goes
                                          hunting. I interrupted to say “But I’m going too”, but dad snubbed me saying that in no
                                          time at all I’ll have a family and one can’t go dragging babies around in the African Bush.”
                                          George takes his lectures with surprising calm. He says he can see Dad’s point of
                                          view much better than I can. He told the parents today that he plans to buy a small
                                          coffee farm in the Southern Highlands of Tanganyika and will build a cosy cottage which
                                          will be a proper home for both of us, and that he will only hunt occasionally to keep the
                                          pot boiling.

                                          Mummy, of course, just had to spill the beans. She said to George, “I suppose
                                          you know that Eleanor knows very little about house keeping and can’t cook at all.” a fact
                                          that I was keeping a dark secret. But George just said, “Oh she won’t have to work. The
                                          boys do all that sort of thing. She can lie on a couch all day and read if she likes.” Well
                                          you always did say that I was a “Lily of the field,” and what a good thing! If I were one of
                                          those terribly capable women I’d probably die of frustration because it seems that
                                          African house boys feel that they have lost face if their Memsahibs do anything but the
                                          most gracious chores.

                                          George is absolutely marvellous. He is strong and gentle and awfully good
                                          looking too. He is about 5 ft 10 ins tall and very broad. He wears his curly brown hair cut
                                          very short and has a close clipped moustache. He has strongly marked eyebrows and
                                          very striking blue eyes which sometimes turn grey or green. His teeth are strong and
                                          even and he has a quiet voice.

                                          I expect all this sounds too good to be true, but come home quickly and see for
                                          yourself. George is off to East Africa in three weeks time to buy our farm. I shall follow as
                                          soon as he has bought it and we will be married in Dar es Salaam.

                                          Dad has taken George for a walk “to get to know him” and that’s why I have time
                                          to write such a long screed. They should be back any minute now and I must fly and
                                          apply a bit of glamour.

                                          Much love my dear,
                                          your jubilant
                                          Eleanor

                                          S.S.Timavo. Durban. 28th.October. 1930.

                                          Dearest Family,
                                          Thank you for the lovely send off. I do wish you were all on board with me and
                                          could come and dance with me at my wedding. We are having a very comfortable
                                          voyage. There were only four of the passengers as far as Durban, all of them women,
                                          but I believe we are taking on more here. I have a most comfortable deck cabin to
                                          myself and the use of a sumptuous bathroom. No one is interested in deck games and I
                                          am having a lazy time, just sunbathing and reading.

                                          I sit at the Captain’s table and the meals are delicious – beautifully served. The
                                          butter for instance, is moulded into sprays of roses, most exquisitely done, and as for
                                          the ice-cream, I’ve never tasted anything like them.

                                          The meals are continental type and we have hors d’oeuvre in a great variety
                                          served on large round trays. The Italians souse theirs with oil, Ugh! We also of course
                                          get lots of spaghetti which I have some difficulty in eating. However this presents no
                                          problem to the Chief Engineer who sits opposite to me. He simply rolls it around his
                                          fork and somehow the spaghetti flows effortlessly from fork to mouth exactly like an
                                          ascending escalator. Wine is served at lunch and dinner – very mild and pleasant stuff.
                                          Of the women passengers the one i liked best was a young German widow
                                          from South west Africa who left the ship at East London to marry a man she had never
                                          met. She told me he owned a drapers shop and she was very happy at the prospect
                                          of starting a new life, as her previous marriage had ended tragically with the death of her
                                          husband and only child in an accident.

                                          I was most interested to see the bridegroom and stood at the rail beside the gay
                                          young widow when we docked at East London. I picked him out, without any difficulty,
                                          from the small group on the quay. He was a tall thin man in a smart grey suit and with a
                                          grey hat perched primly on his head. You can always tell from hats can’t you? I wasn’t
                                          surprised to see, when this German raised his head, that he looked just like the Kaiser’s
                                          “Little Willie”. Long thin nose and cold grey eyes and no smile of welcome on his tight
                                          mouth for the cheery little body beside me. I quite expected him to jerk his thumb and
                                          stalk off, expecting her to trot at his heel.

                                          However she went off blithely enough. Next day before the ship sailed, she
                                          was back and I saw her talking to the Captain. She began to cry and soon after the
                                          Captain patted her on the shoulder and escorted her to the gangway. Later the Captain
                                          told me that the girl had come to ask him to allow her to work her passage back to
                                          Germany where she had some relations. She had married the man the day before but
                                          she disliked him because he had deceived her by pretending that he owned a shop
                                          whereas he was only a window dresser. Bad show for both.

                                          The Captain and the Chief Engineer are the only officers who mix socially with
                                          the passengers. The captain seems rather a melancholy type with, I should say, no
                                          sense of humour. He speaks fair English with an American accent. He tells me that he
                                          was on the San Francisco run during Prohibition years in America and saw many Film
                                          Stars chiefly “under the influence” as they used to flock on board to drink. The Chief
                                          Engineer is big and fat and cheerful. His English is anything but fluent but he makes up
                                          for it in mime.

                                          I visited the relations and friends at Port Elizabeth and East London, and here at
                                          Durban. I stayed with the Trotters and Swans and enjoyed myself very much at both
                                          places. I have collected numerous wedding presents, china and cutlery, coffee
                                          percolator and ornaments, and where I shall pack all these things I don’t know. Everyone has been terribly kind and I feel extremely well and happy.

                                          At the start of the voyage I had a bit of bad luck. You will remember that a
                                          perfectly foul South Easter was blowing. Some men were busy working on a deck
                                          engine and I stopped to watch and a tiny fragment of steel blew into my eye. There is
                                          no doctor on board so the stewardess put some oil into the eye and bandaged it up.
                                          The eye grew more and more painful and inflamed and when when we reached Port
                                          Elizabeth the Captain asked the Port Doctor to look at it. The Doctor said it was a job for
                                          an eye specialist and telephoned from the ship to make an appointment. Luckily for me,
                                          Vincent Tofts turned up at the ship just then and took me off to the specialist and waited
                                          whilst he extracted the fragment with a giant magnet. The specialist said that I was very
                                          lucky as the thing just missed the pupil of my eye so my sight will not be affected. I was
                                          temporarily blinded by the Belladona the eye-man put in my eye so he fitted me with a
                                          pair of black goggles and Vincent escorted me back to the ship. Don’t worry the eye is
                                          now as good as ever and George will not have to take a one-eyed bride for better or
                                          worse.

                                          I have one worry and that is that the ship is going to be very much overdue by
                                          the time we reach Dar es Salaam. She is taking on a big wool cargo and we were held
                                          up for three days in East london and have been here in Durban for five days.
                                          Today is the ninth Anniversary of the Fascist Movement and the ship was
                                          dressed with bunting and flags. I must now go and dress for the gala dinner.

                                          Bless you all,
                                          Eleanor.

                                          S.S.Timavo. 6th. November 1930

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          Nearly there now. We called in at Lourenco Marques, Beira, Mozambique and
                                          Port Amelia. I was the only one of the original passengers left after Durban but there we
                                          took on a Mrs Croxford and her mother and two men passengers. Mrs C must have
                                          something, certainly not looks. She has a flat figure, heavily mascared eyes and crooked
                                          mouth thickly coated with lipstick. But her rather sweet old mother-black-pearls-type tells
                                          me they are worn out travelling around the world trying to shake off an admirer who
                                          pursues Mrs C everywhere.

                                          The one male passenger is very quiet and pleasant. The old lady tells me that he
                                          has recently lost his wife. The other passenger is a horribly bumptious type.
                                          I had my hair beautifully shingled at Lourenco Marques, but what an experience it
                                          was. Before we docked I asked the Captain whether he knew of a hairdresser, but he
                                          said he did not and would have to ask the agent when he came aboard. The agent was
                                          a very suave Asian. He said “Sure he did” and offered to take me in his car. I rather
                                          doubtfully agreed — such a swarthy gentleman — and was driven, not to a hairdressing
                                          establishment, but to his office. Then he spoke to someone on the telephone and in no
                                          time at all a most dago-y type arrived carrying a little black bag. He was all patent
                                          leather, hair, and flashing smile, and greeted me like an old and valued friend.
                                          Before I had collected my scattered wits tthe Agent had flung open a door and
                                          ushered me through, and I found myself seated before an ornate mirror in what was only
                                          too obviously a bedroom. It was a bedroom with a difference though. The unmade bed
                                          had no legs but hung from the ceiling on brass chains.

                                          The agent beamingly shut the door behind him and I was left with my imagination
                                          and the afore mentioned oily hairdresser. He however was very business like. Before I
                                          could say knife he had shingled my hair with a cut throat razor and then, before I could
                                          protest, had smothered my neck in stinking pink powder applied with an enormous and
                                          filthy swansdown powder puff. He held up a mirror for me to admire his handiwork but I
                                          was aware only of the enormous bed reflected in it, and hurriedly murmuring “very nice,
                                          very nice” I made my escape to the outer office where, to my relief, I found the Chief
                                          Engineer who escorted me back to the ship.

                                          In the afternoon Mrs Coxford and the old lady and I hired a taxi and went to the
                                          Polana Hotel for tea. Very swish but I like our Cape Peninsula beaches better.
                                          At Lorenco Marques we took on more passengers. The Governor of
                                          Portuguese Nyasaland and his wife and baby son. He was a large middle aged man,
                                          very friendly and unassuming and spoke perfect English. His wife was German and
                                          exquisite, as fragile looking and with the delicate colouring of a Dresden figurine. She
                                          looked about 18 but she told me she was 28 and showed me photographs of two
                                          other sons – hefty youngsters, whom she had left behind in Portugal and was missing
                                          very much.

                                          It was frightfully hot at Beira and as I had no money left I did not go up to the
                                          town, but Mrs Croxford and I spent a pleasant hour on the beach under the Casurina
                                          trees.

                                          The Governor and his wife left the ship at Mozambique. He looked very
                                          imposing in his starched uniform and she more Dresden Sheperdish than ever in a
                                          flowered frock. There was a guard of honour and all the trimmings. They bade me a warm farewell and invited George and me to stay at any time.

                                          The German ship “Watussi” was anchored in the Bay and I decided to visit her
                                          and try and have my hair washed and set. I had no sooner stepped on board when a
                                          lady came up to me and said “Surely you are Beeba Leslie.” It was Mrs Egan and she
                                          had Molly with her. Considering Mrs Egan had not seen me since I was five I think it was
                                          jolly clever of her to recognise me. Molly is charming and was most friendly. She fixed
                                          things with the hairdresser and sat with me until the job was done. Afterwards I had tea
                                          with them.

                                          Port Amelia was our last stop. In fact the only person to go ashore was Mr
                                          Taylor, the unpleasant man, and he returned at sunset very drunk indeed.
                                          We reached Port Amelia on the 3rd – my birthday. The boat had anchored by
                                          the time I was dressed and when I went on deck I saw several row boats cluttered
                                          around the gangway and in them were natives with cages of wild birds for sale. Such tiny
                                          crowded cages. I was furious, you know me. I bought three cages, carried them out on
                                          to the open deck and released the birds. I expected them to fly to the land but they flew
                                          straight up into the rigging.

                                          The quiet male passenger wandered up and asked me what I was doing. I said
                                          “I’m giving myself a birthday treat, I hate to see caged birds.” So next thing there he
                                          was buying birds which he presented to me with “Happy Birthday.” I gladly set those
                                          birds free too and they joined the others in the rigging.

                                          Then a grinning steward came up with three more cages. “For the lady with
                                          compliments of the Captain.” They lost no time in joining their friends.
                                          It had given me so much pleasure to free the birds that I was only a little
                                          discouraged when the quiet man said thoughtfully “This should encourage those bird
                                          catchers you know, they are sold out. When evening came and we were due to sail I
                                          was sure those birds would fly home, but no, they are still there and they will probably
                                          remain until we dock at Dar es Salaam.

                                          During the morning the Captain came up and asked me what my Christian name
                                          is. He looked as grave as ever and I couldn’t think why it should interest him but said “the
                                          name is Eleanor.” That night at dinner there was a large iced cake in the centre of the
                                          table with “HELENA” in a delicate wreath of pink icing roses on the top. We had
                                          champagne and everyone congratulated me and wished me good luck in my marriage.
                                          A very nice gesture don’t you think. The unpleasant character had not put in an
                                          appearance at dinner which made the party all the nicer

                                          I sat up rather late in the lounge reading a book and by the time I went to bed
                                          there was not a soul around. I bathed and changed into my nighty,walked into my cabin,
                                          shed my dressing gown, and pottered around. When I was ready for bed I put out my
                                          hand to draw the curtains back and a hand grasped my wrist. It was that wretched
                                          creature outside my window on the deck, still very drunk. Luckily I was wearing that
                                          heavy lilac silk nighty. I was livid. “Let go at once”, I said, but he only grinned stupidly.
                                          “I’m not hurting you” he said, “only looking”. “I’ll ring for the steward” said I, and by
                                          stretching I managed to press the bell with my free hand. I rang and rang but no one
                                          came and he just giggled. Then I said furiously, “Remember this name, George
                                          Rushby, he is a fine boxer and he hates specimens like you. When he meets me at Dar
                                          es Salaam I shall tell him about this and I bet you will be sorry.” However he still held on
                                          so I turned and knocked hard on the adjoining wall which divided my cabin from Mrs
                                          Croxfords. Soon Mrs Croxford and the old lady appeared in dressing gowns . This
                                          seemed to amuse the drunk even more though he let go my wrist. So whilst the old
                                          lady stayed with me, Mrs C fetched the quiet passenger who soon hustled him off. He has kept out of my way ever since. However I still mean to tell George because I feel
                                          the fellow got off far too lightly. I reported the matter to the Captain but he just remarked
                                          that he always knew the man was low class because he never wears a jacket to meals.
                                          This is my last night on board and we again had free champagne and I was given
                                          some tooled leather work by the Captain and a pair of good paste earrings by the old
                                          lady. I have invited them and Mrs Croxford, the Chief Engineer, and the quiet
                                          passenger to the wedding.

                                          This may be my last night as Eleanor Leslie and I have spent this long while
                                          writing to you just as a little token of my affection and gratitude for all the years of your
                                          love and care. I shall post this letter on the ship and must turn now and get some beauty
                                          sleep. We have been told that we shall be in Dar es Salaam by 9 am. I am so excited
                                          that I shall not sleep.

                                          Very much love, and just for fun I’ll sign my full name for the last time.
                                          with my “bes respeks”,

                                          Eleanor Leslie.

                                          Eleanor and George Rushby:

                                          Eleanor and George Rushby

                                          Splendid Hotel, Dar es Salaam 11th November 1930

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          I’m writing this in the bedroom whilst George is out buying a tin trunk in which to
                                          pack all our wedding presents. I expect he will be gone a long time because he has
                                          gone out with Hicky Wood and, though our wedding was four days ago, it’s still an
                                          excuse for a party. People are all very cheery and friendly here.
                                          I am wearing only pants and slip but am still hot. One swelters here in the
                                          mornings, but a fresh sea breeze blows in the late afternoons and then Dar es Salaam is
                                          heavenly.

                                          We arrived in Dar es Salaam harbour very early on Friday morning (7 th Nov).
                                          The previous night the Captain had said we might not reach Dar. until 9 am, and certainly
                                          no one would be allowed on board before 8 am. So I dawdled on the deck in my
                                          dressing gown and watched the green coastline and the islands slipping by. I stood on
                                          the deck outside my cabin and was not aware that I was looking out at the wrong side of
                                          the landlocked harbour. Quite unknown to me George and some friends, the Hickson
                                          Woods, were standing on the Gymkhana Beach on the opposite side of the channel
                                          anxiously scanning the ship for a sign of me. George says he had a horrible idea I had
                                          missed the ship. Blissfully unconscious of his anxiety I wandered into the bathroom
                                          prepared for a good soak. The anchor went down when I was in the bath and suddenly
                                          there was a sharp wrap on the door and I heard Mrs Croxford say “There’s a man in a
                                          boat outside. He is looking out for someone and I’m sure it’s your George. I flung on
                                          some clothes and rushed on deck with tousled hair and bare feet and it was George.
                                          We had a marvellous reunion. George was wearing shorts and bush shirt and
                                          looked just like the strong silent types one reads about in novels. I finished dressing then
                                          George helped me bundle all the wedding presents I had collected en route into my
                                          travelling rug and we went into the bar lounge to join the Hickson Woods. They are the
                                          couple from whom George bought the land which is to be our coffee farm Hicky-Wood
                                          was laughing when we joined them. he said he had called a chap to bring a couple of
                                          beers thinking he was the steward but it turned out to be the Captain. He does wear
                                          such a very plain uniform that I suppose it was easy to make the mistake, but Hicky
                                          says he was not amused.

                                          Anyway as the H-W’s are to be our neighbours I’d better describe them. Kath
                                          Wood is very attractive, dark Irish, with curly black hair and big brown eyes. She was
                                          married before to Viv Lumb a great friend of George’s who died some years ago of
                                          blackwater fever. They had one little girl, Maureen, and Kath and Hicky have a small son
                                          of three called Michael. Hicky is slightly below average height and very neat and dapper
                                          though well built. He is a great one for a party and good fun but George says he can be
                                          bad tempered.

                                          Anyway we all filed off the ship and Hicky and Cath went on to the hotel whilst
                                          George and I went through customs. Passing the customs was easy. Everyone
                                          seemed to know George and that it was his wedding day and I just sailed through,
                                          except for the little matter of the rug coming undone when George and I had to scramble
                                          on the floor for candlesticks and fruit knives and a wooden nut bowl.
                                          Outside the customs shed we were mobbed by a crowd of jabbering Africans
                                          offering their services as porters, and soon my luggage was piled in one rickshaw whilst
                                          George and I climbed into another and we were born smoothly away on rubber shod
                                          wheels to the Splendid Hotel. The motion was pleasing enough but it seemed weird to
                                          be pulled along by one human being whilst another pushed behind.  We turned up a street called Acacia Avenue which, as its name implies, is lined
                                          with flamboyant acacia trees now in the full glory of scarlet and gold. The rickshaw
                                          stopped before the Splendid Hotel and I was taken upstairs into a pleasant room which
                                          had its own private balcony overlooking the busy street.

                                          Here George broke the news that we were to be married in less than an hours
                                          time. He would have to dash off and change and then go straight to the church. I would
                                          be quite all right, Kath would be looking in and friends would fetch me.
                                          I started to dress and soon there was a tap at the door and Mrs Hickson-Wood
                                          came in with my bouquet. It was a lovely bunch of carnations and frangipani with lots of
                                          asparagus fern and it went well with my primrose yellow frock. She admired my frock
                                          and Leghorn hat and told me that her little girl Maureen was to be my flower girl. Then
                                          she too left for the church.

                                          I was fully dressed when there was another knock on the door and I opened it to
                                          be confronted by a Police Officer in a starched white uniform. I’m McCallum”, he said,
                                          “I’ve come to drive you to the church.” Downstairs he introduced me to a big man in a
                                          tussore silk suit. “This is Dr Shicore”, said McCallum, “He is going to give you away.”
                                          Honestly, I felt exactly like Alice in Wonderland. Wouldn’t have been at all surprised if
                                          the White Rabbit had popped up and said he was going to be my page.

                                          I walked out of the hotel and across the pavement in a dream and there, by the
                                          curb, was a big dark blue police car decorated with white ribbons and with a tall African
                                          Police Ascari holding the door open for me. I had hardly time to wonder what next when
                                          the car drew up before a tall German looking church. It was in fact the Lutheran Church in
                                          the days when Tanganyika was German East Africa.

                                          Mrs Hickson-Wood, very smart in mushroom coloured georgette and lace, and
                                          her small daughter were waiting in the porch, so in we went. I was glad to notice my
                                          friends from the boat sitting behind George’s friends who were all complete strangers to
                                          me. The aisle seemed very long but at last I reached George waiting in the chancel with
                                          Hicky-Wood, looking unfamiliar in a smart tussore suit. However this feeling of unreality
                                          passed when he turned his head and smiled at me.

                                          In the vestry after the ceremony I was kissed affectionately by several complete
                                          strangers and I felt happy and accepted by George’s friends. Outside the church,
                                          standing apart from the rest of the guests, the Italian Captain and Chief Engineer were
                                          waiting. They came up and kissed my hand, and murmured felicitations, but regretted
                                          they could not spare the time to come to the reception. Really it was just as well
                                          because they would not have fitted in at all well.

                                          Dr Shircore is the Director of Medical Services and he had very kindly lent his
                                          large house for the reception. It was quite a party. The guests were mainly men with a
                                          small sprinkling of wives. Champagne corks popped and there was an enormous cake
                                          and soon voices were raised in song. The chief one was ‘Happy Days Are Here Again’
                                          and I shall remember it for ever.

                                          The party was still in full swing when George and I left. The old lady from the ship
                                          enjoyed it hugely. She came in an all black outfit with a corsage of artificial Lily-of-the-
                                          Valley. Later I saw one of the men wearing the corsage in his buttonhole and the old
                                          lady was wearing a carnation.

                                          When George and I got back to the hotel,I found that my luggage had been
                                          moved to George’s room by his cook Lamek, who was squatting on his haunches and
                                          clapped his hands in greeting. My dears, you should see Lamek – exactly like a
                                          chimpanzee – receding forehead, wide flat nose, and long lip, and such splayed feet. It was quite a strain not to laugh, especially when he produced a gift for me. I have not yet
                                          discovered where he acquired it. It was a faded mauve straw toque of the kind worn by
                                          Queen Mary. I asked George to tell Lamek that I was touched by his generosity but felt
                                          that I could not accept his gift. He did not mind at all especially as George gave him a
                                          generous tip there and then.

                                          I changed into a cotton frock and shady straw hat and George changed into shorts
                                          and bush shirt once more. We then sneaked into the dining room for lunch avoiding our
                                          wedding guests who were carrying on the party in the lounge.

                                          After lunch we rejoined them and they all came down to the jetty to wave goodbye
                                          as we set out by motor launch for Honeymoon Island. I enjoyed the launch trip very
                                          much. The sea was calm and very blue and the palm fringed beaches of Dar es Salaam
                                          are as romantic as any bride could wish. There are small coral islands dotted around the
                                          Bay of which Honeymoon Island is the loveliest. I believe at one time it bore the less
                                          romantic name of Quarantine Island. Near the Island, in the shallows, the sea is brilliant
                                          green and I saw two pink jellyfish drifting by.

                                          There is no jetty on the island so the boat was stopped in shallow water and
                                          George carried me ashore. I was enchanted with the Island and in no hurry to go to the
                                          bungalow, so George and I took our bathing costumes from our suitcases and sent the
                                          luggage up to the house together with a box of provisions.

                                          We bathed and lazed on the beach and suddenly it was sunset and it began to
                                          get dark. We walked up the beach to the bungalow and began to unpack the stores,
                                          tea, sugar, condensed milk, bread and butter, sardines and a large tin of ham. There
                                          were also cups and saucers and plates and cutlery.

                                          We decided to have an early meal and George called out to the caretaker, “Boy
                                          letta chai”. Thereupon the ‘boy’ materialised and jabbered to George in Ki-Swaheli. It
                                          appeared he had no utensil in which to boil water. George, ever resourceful, removed
                                          the ham from the tin and gave him that. We had our tea all right but next day the ham
                                          was bad.

                                          Then came bed time. I took a hurricane lamp in one hand and my suitcase in the
                                          other and wandered into the bedroom whilst George vanished into the bathroom. To
                                          my astonishment I saw two perfectly bare iron bedsteads – no mattress or pillows. We
                                          had brought sheets and mosquito nets but, believe me, they are a poor substitute for a
                                          mattress.

                                          Anyway I arrayed myself in my pale yellow satin nightie and sat gingerly down
                                          on the iron edge of the bed to await my groom who eventually appeared in a
                                          handsome suit of silk pyjamas. His expression, as he took in the situation, was too much
                                          for me and I burst out laughing and so did he.

                                          Somewhere in the small hours I woke up. The breeze had dropped and the
                                          room was unbearably stuffy. I felt as dry as a bone. The lamp had been turned very
                                          low and had gone out, but I remembered seeing a water tank in the yard and I decided
                                          to go out in the dark and drink from the tap. In the dark I could not find my slippers so I
                                          slipped my feet into George’s shoes, picked up his matches and groped my way out
                                          of the room. I found the tank all right and with one hand on the tap and one cupped for
                                          water I stooped to drink. Just then I heard a scratchy noise and sensed movements
                                          around my feet. I struck a match and oh horrors! found that the damp spot on which I was
                                          standing was alive with white crabs. In my hurry to escape I took a clumsy step, put
                                          George’s big toe on the hem of my nightie and down I went on top of the crabs. I need
                                          hardly say that George was awakened by an appalling shriek and came rushing to my
                                          aid like a knight of old.  Anyway, alarms and excursions not withstanding, we had a wonderful weekend on the island and I was sorry to return to the heat of Dar es Salaam, though the evenings
                                          here are lovely and it is heavenly driving along the coast road by car or in a rickshaw.
                                          I was surprised to find so many Indians here. Most of the shops, large and small,
                                          seem to be owned by Indians and the place teems with them. The women wear
                                          colourful saris and their hair in long black plaits reaching to their waists. Many wear baggy
                                          trousers of silk or satin. They give a carnival air to the sea front towards sunset.
                                          This long letter has been written in instalments throughout the day. My first break
                                          was when I heard the sound of a band and rushed to the balcony in time to see The
                                          Kings African Rifles band and Askaris march down the Avenue on their way to an
                                          Armistice Memorial Service. They looked magnificent.

                                          I must end on a note of most primitive pride. George returned from his shopping
                                          expedition and beamingly informed me that he had thrashed the man who annoyed me
                                          on the ship. I felt extremely delighted and pressed for details. George told me that
                                          when he went out shopping he noticed to his surprise that the ‘Timavo” was still in the
                                          harbour. He went across to the Agents office and there saw a man who answered to the
                                          description I had given. George said to him “Is your name Taylor?”, and when he said
                                          “yes”, George said “Well my name is George Rushby”, whereupon he hit Taylor on the
                                          jaw so that he sailed over the counter and down the other side. Very satisfactory, I feel.
                                          With much love to all.

                                          Your cave woman
                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mchewe Estate. P.O. Mbeya 22 November 1930

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          Well here we are at our Country Seat, Mchewe Estate. (pronounced
                                          Mn,-che’-we) but I will start at the beginning of our journey and describe the farm later.
                                          We left the hotel at Dar es Salaam for the station in a taxi crowded with baggage
                                          and at the last moment Keith Wood ran out with the unwrapped bottom layer of our
                                          wedding cake. It remained in its naked state from there to here travelling for two days in
                                          the train on the luggage rack, four days in the car on my knee, reposing at night on the
                                          roof of the car exposed to the winds of Heaven, and now rests beside me in the tent
                                          looking like an old old tombstone. We have no tin large enough to hold it and one
                                          simply can’t throw away ones wedding cake so, as George does not eat cake, I can see
                                          myself eating wedding cake for tea for months to come, ants permitting.

                                          We travelled up by train from Dar to Dodoma, first through the lush vegetation of
                                          the coastal belt to Morogoro, then through sisal plantations now very overgrown with
                                          weeds owing to the slump in prices, and then on to the arid area around Dodoma. This
                                          part of the country is very dry at this time of the year and not unlike parts of our Karoo.
                                          The train journey was comfortable enough but slow as the engines here are fed with
                                          wood and not coal as in South Africa.

                                          Dodoma is the nearest point on the railway to Mbeya so we left the train there to
                                          continue our journey by road. We arrived at the one and only hotel in the early hours and
                                          whilst someone went to rout out the night watchman the rest of us sat on the dismal
                                          verandah amongst a litter of broken glass. Some bright spark remarked on the obvious –
                                          that there had been a party the night before.

                                          When we were shown to a room I thought I rather preferred the verandah,
                                          because the beds had not yet been made up and there was a bucket of vomit beside
                                          the old fashioned washstand. However George soon got the boys to clean up the
                                          room and I fell asleep to be awakened by George with an invitation to come and see
                                          our car before breakfast.

                                          Yes, we have our own car. It is a Chev, with what is called a box body. That
                                          means that sides, roof and doors are made by a local Indian carpenter. There is just the
                                          one front seat with a kapok mattress on it. The tools are kept in a sort of cupboard fixed
                                          to the side so there is a big space for carrying “safari kit” behind the cab seat.
                                          Lamek, who had travelled up on the same train, appeared after breakfast, and
                                          helped George to pack all our luggage into the back of the car. Besides our suitcases
                                          there was a huge bedroll, kitchen utensils and a box of provisions, tins of petrol and
                                          water and all Lamek’s bits and pieces which included three chickens in a wicker cage and
                                          an enormous bunch of bananas about 3 ft long.

                                          When all theses things were packed there remained only a small space between
                                          goods and ceiling and into this Lamek squeezed. He lay on his back with his horny feet a
                                          mere inch or so from the back of my head. In this way we travelled 400 miles over
                                          bumpy earth roads and crude pole bridges, but whenever we stopped for a meal
                                          Lamek wriggled out and, like Aladdin’s genie, produced good meals in no time at all.
                                          In the afternoon we reached a large river called the Ruaha. Workmen were busy
                                          building a large bridge across it but it is not yet ready so we crossed by a ford below
                                          the bridge. George told me that the river was full of crocodiles but though I looked hard, I
                                          did not see any. This is also elephant country but I did not see any of those either, only
                                          piles of droppings on the road. I must tell you that the natives around these parts are called Wahehe and the river is Ruaha – enough to make a cat laugh. We saw some Wahehe out hunting with spears
                                          and bows and arrows. They live in long low houses with the tiniest shuttered windows
                                          and rounded roofs covered with earth.

                                          Near the river we also saw a few Masai herding cattle. They are rather terrifying to
                                          look at – tall, angular, and very aloof. They wear nothing but a blanket knotted on one
                                          shoulder, concealing nothing, and all carried one or two spears.
                                          The road climbs steeply on the far side of the Ruaha and one has the most
                                          tremendous views over the plains. We spent our first night up there in the high country.
                                          Everything was taken out of the car, the bed roll opened up and George and I slept
                                          comfortably in the back of the car whilst Lamek, rolled in a blanket, slept soundly by a
                                          small fire nearby. Next morning we reached our first township, Iringa, and put up at the
                                          Colonist Hotel. We had a comfortable room in the annex overlooking the golf course.
                                          our room had its own little dressing room which was also the bathroom because, when
                                          ordered to do so, the room boy carried in an oval galvanised bath and filled it with hot
                                          water which he carried in a four gallon petrol tin.

                                          When we crossed to the main building for lunch, George was immediately hailed
                                          by several men who wanted to meet the bride. I was paid some handsome
                                          compliments but was not sure whether they were sincere or the result of a nice alcoholic
                                          glow. Anyhow every one was very friendly.

                                          After lunch I went back to the bedroom leaving George chatting away. I waited and
                                          waited – no George. I got awfully tired of waiting and thought I’d give him a fright so I
                                          walked out onto the deserted golf course and hid behind some large boulders. Soon I
                                          saw George returning to the room and the boy followed with a tea tray. Ah, now the hue
                                          and cry will start, thought I, but no, no George appeared nor could I hear any despairing
                                          cry. When sunset came I trailed crossly back to our hotel room where George lay
                                          innocently asleep on his bed, hands folded on his chest like a crusader on his tomb. In a
                                          moment he opened his eyes, smiled sleepily and said kindly, “Did you have a nice walk
                                          my love?” So of course I couldn’t play the neglected wife as he obviously didn’t think
                                          me one and we had a very pleasant dinner and party in the hotel that evening.
                                          Next day we continued our journey but turned aside to visit the farm of a sprightly
                                          old man named St.Leger Seaton whom George had known for many years, so it was
                                          after dark before George decided that we had covered our quota of miles for the day.
                                          Whilst he and Lamek unpacked I wandered off to a stream to cool my hot feet which had
                                          baked all day on the floor boards of the car. In the rather dim moonlight I sat down on the
                                          grassy bank and gratefully dabbled my feet in the cold water. A few minutes later I
                                          started up with a shriek – I had the sensation of red hot pins being dug into all my most
                                          sensitive parts. I started clawing my clothes off and, by the time George came to the
                                          rescue with the lamp, I was practically in the nude. “Only Siafu ants,” said George calmly.
                                          Take off all your clothes and get right in the water.” So I had a bathe whilst George
                                          picked the ants off my clothes by the light of the lamp turned very low for modesty’s
                                          sake. Siafu ants are beastly things. They are black ants with outsized heads and
                                          pinchers. I shall be very, very careful where I sit in future.

                                          The next day was even hotter. There was no great variety in the scenery. Most
                                          of the country was covered by a tree called Miombo, which is very ordinary when the
                                          foliage is a mature deep green, but when in new leaf the trees look absolutely beautiful
                                          as the leaves,surprisingly, are soft pastel shades of red and yellow.

                                          Once again we turned aside from the main road to visit one of George’s friends.
                                          This man Major Hugh Jones MC, has a farm only a few miles from ours but just now he is supervising the making of an airstrip. Major Jones is quite a character. He is below
                                          average height and skinny with an almost bald head and one nearly blind eye into which
                                          he screws a monocle. He is a cultured person and will, I am sure, make an interesting
                                          neighbour. George and Major Jones’ friends call him ‘Joni’ but he is generally known in
                                          this country as ‘Ropesoles’ – as he is partial to that type of footwear.
                                          We passed through Mbeya township after dark so I have no idea what the place
                                          is like. The last 100 miles of our journey was very dusty and the last 15 miles extremely
                                          bumpy. The road is used so little that in some places we had to plow our way through
                                          long grass and I was delighted when at last George turned into a side road and said
                                          “This is our place.” We drove along the bank of the Mchewe River, then up a hill and
                                          stopped at a tent which was pitched beside the half built walls of our new home. We
                                          were expected so there was hot water for baths and after a supper of tinned food and
                                          good hot tea, I climbed thankfully into bed.

                                          Next morning I was awakened by the chattering of the African workmen and was
                                          soon out to inspect the new surroundings. Our farm was once part of Hickson Wood’s
                                          land and is separated from theirs by a river. Our houses cannot be more than a few
                                          hundred yards apart as the crow flies but as both are built on the slopes of a long range
                                          of high hills, and one can only cross the river at the foot of the slopes, it will be quite a
                                          safari to go visiting on foot . Most of our land is covered with shoulder high grass but it
                                          has been partly cleared of trees and scrub. Down by the river George has made a long
                                          coffee nursery and a large vegetable garden but both coffee and vegetable seedlings
                                          are too small to be of use.

                                          George has spared all the trees that will make good shade for the coffee later on.
                                          There are several huge wild fig trees as big as oaks but with smooth silvery-green trunks
                                          and branches and there are lots of acacia thorn trees with flat tops like Japanese sun
                                          shades. I’ve seen lovely birds in the fig trees, Louries with bright plumage and crested
                                          heads, and Blue Rollers, and in the grasslands there are widow birds with incredibly long
                                          black tail feathers.

                                          There are monkeys too and horrible but fascinating tree lizards with blue bodies
                                          and orange heads. There are so many, many things to tell you but they must wait for
                                          another time as James, the house boy, has been to say “Bafu tiari” and if I don’t go at
                                          once, the bath will be cold.

                                          I am very very happy and terribly interested in this new life so please don’t
                                          worry about me.

                                          Much love to you all,
                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mchewe Estate 29th. November 1930

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          I’ve lots of time to write letters just now because George is busy supervising the
                                          building of the house from early morning to late afternoon – with a break for lunch of
                                          course.

                                          On our second day here our tent was moved from the house site to a small
                                          clearing further down the slope of our hill. Next to it the labourers built a ‘banda’ , which is
                                          a three sided grass hut with thatched roof – much cooler than the tent in this weather.
                                          There is also a little grass lav. so you see we have every convenience. I spend most of
                                          my day in the banda reading or writing letters. Occasionally I wander up to the house site
                                          and watch the building, but mostly I just sit.

                                          I did try exploring once. I wandered down a narrow path towards the river. I
                                          thought I might paddle and explore the river a little but I came round a bend and there,
                                          facing me, was a crocodile. At least for a moment I thought it was and my adrenaline
                                          glands got very busy indeed. But it was only an enormous monitor lizard, four or five
                                          feet long. It must have been as scared as I was because it turned and rushed off through
                                          the grass. I turned and walked hastily back to the camp and as I passed the house site I
                                          saw some boys killing a large puff adder. Now I do my walking in the evenings with
                                          George. Nothing alarming ever seems to happen when he is around.

                                          It is interesting to watch the boys making bricks for the house. They make a pile
                                          of mud which they trample with their feet until it is the right consistency. Then they fill
                                          wooden moulds with the clayey mud, and press it down well and turn out beautiful shiny,
                                          dark brown bricks which are laid out in rows and covered with grass to bake slowly in the
                                          sun.

                                          Most of the materials for the building are right here at hand. The walls will be sun
                                          dried bricks and there is a white clay which will make a good whitewash for the inside
                                          walls. The chimney and walls will be of burnt brick and tiles and George is now busy
                                          building a kiln for this purpose. Poles for the roof are being cut in the hills behind the
                                          house and every day women come along with large bundles of thatching grass on their
                                          heads. Our windows are modern steel casement ones and the doors have been made
                                          at a mission in the district. George does some of the bricklaying himself. The other
                                          bricklayer is an African from Northern Rhodesia called Pedro. It makes me perspire just
                                          to look at Pedro who wears an overcoat all day in the very hot sun.
                                          Lamek continues to please. He turns out excellent meals, chicken soup followed
                                          by roast chicken, vegetables from the Hickson-Woods garden and a steamed pudding
                                          or fruit to wind up the meal. I enjoy the chicken but George is fed up with it and longs for
                                          good red meat. The chickens are only about as large as a partridge but then they cost
                                          only sixpence each.

                                          I had my first visit to Mbeya two days ago. I put on my very best trousseau frock
                                          for the occasion- that yellow striped silk one – and wore my wedding hat. George didn’t
                                          comment, but I saw later that I was dreadfully overdressed.
                                          Mbeya at the moment is a very small settlement consisting of a bundle of small
                                          Indian shops – Dukas they call them, which stock European tinned foods and native soft
                                          goods which seem to be mainly of Japanese origin. There is a one storied Government
                                          office called the Boma and two attractive gabled houses of burnt brick which house the
                                          District Officer and his Assistant. Both these houses have lovely gardens but i saw them
                                          only from the outside as we did not call. After buying our stores George said “Lets go to the pub, I want you to meet Mrs Menzies.” Well the pub turned out to be just three or four grass rondavels on a bare
                                          plot. The proprietor, Ken Menzies, came out to welcome us. I took to him at once
                                          because he has the same bush sandy eyebrows as you have Dad. He told me that
                                          unfortunately his wife is away at the coast, and then he ushered me through the door
                                          saying “Here’s George with his bride.” then followed the Iringa welcome all over again,
                                          only more so, because the room was full of diggers from the Lupa Goldfields about fifty
                                          miles away.

                                          Champagne corks popped as I shook hands all around and George was
                                          clapped on the back. I could see he was a favourite with everyone and I tried not to be
                                          gauche and let him down. These men were all most kind and most appeared to be men
                                          of more than average education. However several were unshaven and looked as
                                          though they had slept in their clothes as I suppose they had. When they have a little luck
                                          on the diggings they come in here to Menzies pub and spend the lot. George says
                                          they bring their gold dust and small nuggets in tobacco tins or Kruschen salts jars and
                                          hand them over to Ken Menzies saying “Tell me when I’ve spent the lot.” Ken then
                                          weighs the gold and estimates its value and does exactly what the digger wants.
                                          However the Diggers get good value for their money because besides the drink
                                          they get companionship and good food and nursing if they need it. Mrs Menzies is a
                                          trained nurse and most kind and capable from what I was told. There is no doctor or
                                          hospital here so her experience as a nursing sister is invaluable.
                                          We had lunch at the Hotel and afterwards I poured tea as I was the only female
                                          present. Once the shyness had worn off I rather enjoyed myself.

                                          Now to end off I must tell you a funny story of how I found out that George likes
                                          his women to be feminine. You will remember those dashing black silk pyjamas Aunt
                                          Mary gave me, with flowered “happy coat” to match. Well last night I thought I’d give
                                          George a treat and when the boy called me for my bath I left George in the ‘banda’
                                          reading the London Times. After my bath I put on my Japanese pyjamas and coat,
                                          peered into the shaving mirror which hangs from the tent pole and brushed my hair until it
                                          shone. I must confess that with my fringe and shingled hair I thought I made quite a
                                          glamourous Japanese girl. I walked coyly across to the ‘banda’. Alas no compliment.
                                          George just glanced up from the Times and went on reading.
                                          He was away rather a long time when it came to his turn to bath. I glanced up
                                          when he came back and had a slight concussion. George, if you please, was arrayed in
                                          my very best pale yellow satin nightie. The one with the lace and ribbon sash and little
                                          bows on the shoulder. I knew exactly what he meant to convey. I was not to wear the
                                          trousers in the family. I seethed inwardly, but pretending not to notice, I said calmly “shall
                                          I call for food?” In this garb George sat down to dinner and it says a great deal for African
                                          phlegm that the boy did not drop the dishes.

                                          We conversed politely about this and that, and then, as usual, George went off
                                          to bed. I appeared to be engrossed in my book and did not stir. When I went to the
                                          tent some time later George lay fast asleep still in my nightie, though all I could see of it
                                          was the little ribbon bows looking farcically out of place on his broad shoulders.
                                          This morning neither of us mentioned the incident, George was up and dressed
                                          by the time I woke up but I have been smiling all day to think what a ridiculous picture
                                          we made at dinner. So farewell to pyjamas and hey for ribbons and bows.

                                          Your loving
                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mchewe Estate. Mbeya. 8th December 1930

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          A mere shadow of her former buxom self lifts a languid pen to write to you. I’m
                                          convalescing after my first and I hope my last attack of malaria. It was a beastly
                                          experience but all is now well and I am eating like a horse and will soon regain my
                                          bounce.

                                          I took ill on the evening of the day I wrote my last letter to you. It started with a
                                          splitting headache and fits of shivering. The symptoms were all too familiar to George
                                          who got me into bed and filled me up with quinine. He then piled on all the available
                                          blankets and packed me in hot water bottles. I thought I’d explode and said so and
                                          George said just to lie still and I’d soon break into a good sweat. However nothing of the
                                          kind happened and next day my temperature was 105 degrees. Instead of feeling
                                          miserable as I had done at the onset, I now felt very merry and most chatty. George
                                          now tells me I sang the most bawdy songs but I hardly think it likely. Do you?
                                          You cannot imagine how tenderly George nursed me, not only that day but
                                          throughout the whole eight days I was ill. As we do not employ any African house
                                          women, and there are no white women in the neighbourhood at present to whom we
                                          could appeal for help, George had to do everything for me. It was unbearably hot in the
                                          tent so George decided to move me across to the Hickson-Woods vacant house. They
                                          have not yet returned from the coast.

                                          George decided I was too weak to make the trip in the car so he sent a
                                          messenger over to the Woods’ house for their Machila. A Machila is a canopied canvas
                                          hammock slung from a bamboo pole and carried by four bearers. The Machila duly
                                          arrived and I attempted to walk to it, clinging to George’s arm, but collapsed in a faint so
                                          the trip was postponed to the next morning when I felt rather better. Being carried by
                                          Machila is quite pleasant but I was in no shape to enjoy anything and got thankfully into
                                          bed in the Hickson-Woods large, cool and rather dark bedroom. My condition did not
                                          improve and George decided to send a runner for the Government Doctor at Tukuyu
                                          about 60 miles away. Two days later Dr Theis arrived by car and gave me two
                                          injections of quinine which reduced the fever. However I still felt very weak and had to
                                          spend a further four days in bed.

                                          We have now decided to stay on here until the Hickson-Woods return by which
                                          time our own house should be ready. George goes off each morning and does not
                                          return until late afternoon. However don’t think “poor Eleanor” because I am very
                                          comfortable here and there are lots of books to read and the days seem to pass very
                                          quickly.

                                          The Hickson-Wood’s house was built by Major Jones and I believe the one on
                                          his shamba is just like it. It is a square red brick building with a wide verandah all around
                                          and, rather astonishingly, a conical thatched roof. There is a beautiful view from the front
                                          of the house and a nice flower garden. The coffee shamba is lower down on the hill.
                                          Mrs Wood’s first husband, George’s friend Vi Lumb, is buried in the flower
                                          garden. He died of blackwater fever about five years ago. I’m told that before her
                                          second marriage Kath lived here alone with her little daughter, Maureen, and ran the farm
                                          entirely on her own. She must be quite a person. I bet she didn’t go and get malaria
                                          within a few weeks of her marriage.

                                          The native tribe around here are called Wasafwa. They are pretty primitive but
                                          seem amiable people. Most of the men, when they start work, wear nothing but some
                                          kind of sheet of unbleached calico wrapped round their waists and hanging to mid calf. As soon as they have drawn their wages they go off to a duka and buy a pair of khaki
                                          shorts for five or six shillings. Their women folk wear very short beaded skirts. I think the
                                          base is goat skin but have never got close enough for a good look. They are very shy.
                                          I hear from George that they have started on the roof of our house but I have not
                                          seen it myself since the day I was carried here by Machila. My letters by the way go to
                                          the Post Office by runner. George’s farm labourers take it in turn to act in this capacity.
                                          The mail bag is given to them on Friday afternoon and by Saturday evening they are
                                          back with our very welcome mail.

                                          Very much love,
                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mbeya 23rd December 1930

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          George drove to Mbeya for stores last week and met Col. Sherwood-Kelly VC.
                                          who has been sent by the Government to Mbeya as Game Ranger. His job will be to
                                          protect native crops from raiding elephants and hippo etc., and to protect game from
                                          poachers. He has had no training for this so he has asked George to go with him on his
                                          first elephant safari to show him the ropes.

                                          George likes Col. Kelly and was quite willing to go on safari but not willing to
                                          leave me alone on the farm as I am still rather shaky after malaria. So it was arranged that
                                          I should go to Mbeya and stay with Mrs Harmer, the wife of the newly appointed Lands
                                          and Mines Officer, whose husband was away on safari.

                                          So here I am in Mbeya staying in the Harmers temporary wattle and daub
                                          house. Unfortunately I had a relapse of the malaria and stayed in bed for three days with
                                          a temperature. Poor Mrs Harmer had her hands full because in the room next to mine
                                          she was nursing a digger with blackwater fever. I could hear his delirious babble through
                                          the thin wall – very distressing. He died poor fellow , and leaves a wife and seven
                                          children.

                                          I feel better than I have done for weeks and this afternoon I walked down to the
                                          store. There are great signs of activity and people say that Mbeya will grow rapidly now
                                          owing to the boom on the gold fields and also to the fact that a large aerodrome is to be
                                          built here. Mbeya is to be a night stop on the proposed air service between England
                                          and South Africa. I seem to be the last of the pioneers. If all these schemes come about
                                          Mbeya will become quite suburban.

                                          26th December 1930

                                          George, Col. Kelly and Mr Harmer all returned to Mbeya on Christmas Eve and
                                          it was decided that we should stay and have midday Christmas dinner with the
                                          Harmers. Col. Kelly and the Assistant District Commissioner came too and it was quite a
                                          festive occasion, We left Mbeya in the early afternoon and had our evening meal here at
                                          Hickson-Wood’s farm. I wore my wedding dress.

                                          I went across to our house in the car this morning. George usually walks across to
                                          save petrol which is very expensive here. He takes a short cut and wades through the
                                          river. The distance by road is very much longer than the short cut. The men are now
                                          thatching the roof of our cottage and it looks charming. It consists of a very large living
                                          room-dinning room with a large inglenook fireplace at one end. The bedroom is a large
                                          square room with a smaller verandah room adjoining it. There is a wide verandah in the
                                          front, from which one has a glorious view over a wide valley to the Livingstone
                                          Mountains on the horizon. Bathroom and storeroom are on the back verandah and the
                                          kitchen is some distance behind the house to minimise the risk of fire.

                                          You can imagine how much I am looking forward to moving in. We have some
                                          furniture which was made by an Indian carpenter at Iringa, refrectory dining table and
                                          chairs, some small tables and two armchairs and two cupboards and a meatsafe. Other
                                          things like bookshelves and extra cupboards we will have to make ourselves. George
                                          has also bought a portable gramophone and records which will be a boon.
                                          We also have an Irish wolfhound puppy, a skinny little chap with enormous feet
                                          who keeps me company all day whilst George is across at our farm working on the
                                          house.

                                          Lots and lots of love,
                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mchewe Estate 8th Jan 1931

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          Alas, I have lost my little companion. The Doctor called in here on Boxing night
                                          and ran over and killed Paddy, our pup. It was not his fault but I was very distressed
                                          about it and George has promised to try and get another pup from the same litter.
                                          The Hickson-Woods returned home on the 29th December so we decided to
                                          move across to our nearly finished house on the 1st January. Hicky Wood decided that
                                          we needed something special to mark the occasion so he went off and killed a sucking
                                          pig behind the kitchen. The piglet’s screams were terrible and I felt that I would not be
                                          able to touch any dinner. Lamek cooked and served sucking pig up in the traditional way
                                          but it was high and quite literally, it stank. Our first meal in our own home was not a
                                          success.

                                          However next day all was forgotten and I had something useful to do. George
                                          hung doors and I held the tools and I also planted rose cuttings I had brought from
                                          Mbeya and sowed several boxes with seeds.

                                          Dad asked me about the other farms in the area. I haven’t visited any but there
                                          are five besides ours. One belongs to the Lutheran Mission at Utengule, a few miles
                                          from here. The others all belong to British owners. Nearest to Mbeya, at the foot of a
                                          very high peak which gives Mbeya its name, are two farms, one belonging to a South
                                          African mining engineer named Griffiths, the other to I.G.Stewart who was an officer in the
                                          Kings African Rifles. Stewart has a young woman called Queenie living with him. We are
                                          some miles further along the range of hills and are some 23 miles from Mbeya by road.
                                          The Mchewe River divides our land from the Hickson-Woods and beyond their farm is
                                          Major Jones.

                                          All these people have been away from their farms for some time but have now
                                          returned so we will have some neighbours in future. However although the houses are
                                          not far apart as the crow flies, they are all built high in the foothills and it is impossible to
                                          connect the houses because of the rivers and gorges in between. One has to drive right
                                          down to the main road and then up again so I do not suppose we will go visiting very
                                          often as the roads are very bumpy and eroded and petrol is so expensive that we all
                                          save it for occasional trips to Mbeya.

                                          The rains are on and George has started to plant out some coffee seedlings. The
                                          rains here are strange. One can hear the rain coming as it moves like a curtain along the
                                          range of hills. It comes suddenly, pours for a little while and passes on and the sun
                                          shines again.

                                          I do like it here and I wish you could see or dear little home.

                                          Your loving,
                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mchewe Estate. 1st April 1931

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          Everything is now running very smoothly in our home. Lamek continues to
                                          produce palatable meals and makes wonderful bread which he bakes in a four gallon
                                          petrol tin as we have no stove yet. He puts wood coals on the brick floor of the kitchen,
                                          lays the tin lengh-wise on the coals and heaps more on top. The bread tins are then put
                                          in the petrol tin, which has one end cut away, and the open end is covered by a flat
                                          piece of tin held in place by a brick. Cakes are also backed in this make-shift oven and I
                                          have never known Lamek to have a failure yet.

                                          Lamek has a helper, known as the ‘mpishi boy’ , who does most of the hard
                                          work, cleans pots and pans and chops the firewood etc. Another of the mpishi boy’s
                                          chores is to kill the two chickens we eat each day. The chickens run wild during the day
                                          but are herded into a small chicken house at night. One of the kitchen boy’s first duties is
                                          to let the chickens out first thing in the early morning. Some time after breakfast it dawns
                                          on Lamek that he will need a chicken for lunch. he informs the kitchen boy who selects a
                                          chicken and starts to chase it in which he is enthusiastically joined by our new Irish
                                          wolfhound pup, Kelly. Together they race after the frantic fowl, over the flower beds and
                                          around the house until finally the chicken collapses from sheer exhaustion. The kitchen
                                          boy then hands it over to Lamek who murders it with the kitchen knife and then pops the
                                          corpse into boiling water so the feathers can be stripped off with ease.

                                          I pointed out in vain, that it would be far simpler if the doomed chickens were kept
                                          in the chicken house in the mornings when the others were let out and also that the correct
                                          way to pluck chickens is when they are dry. Lamek just smiled kindly and said that that
                                          may be so in Europe but that his way is the African way and none of his previous
                                          Memsahibs has complained.

                                          My houseboy, named James, is clean and capable in the house and also a
                                          good ‘dhobi’ or washboy. He takes the washing down to the river and probably
                                          pounds it with stones, but I prefer not to look. The ironing is done with a charcoal iron
                                          only we have no charcoal and he uses bits of wood from the kitchen fire but so far there
                                          has not been a mishap.

                                          It gets dark here soon after sunset and then George lights the oil lamps and we
                                          have tea and toast in front of the log fire which burns brightly in our inglenook. This is my
                                          favourite hour of the day. Later George goes for his bath. I have mine in the mornings
                                          and we have dinner at half past eight. Then we talk a bit and read a bit and sometimes
                                          play the gramophone. I expect it all sounds pretty unexciting but it doesn’t seem so to
                                          me.

                                          Very much love,
                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mchewe Estate 20th April 1931

                                          Dearest Family,

                                          It is still raining here and the countryside looks very lush and green, very different
                                          from the Mbeya district I first knew, when plains and hills were covered in long brown
                                          grass – very course stuff that grows shoulder high.

                                          Most of the labourers are hill men and one can see little patches of cultivation in
                                          the hills. Others live in small villages near by, each consisting of a cluster of thatched huts
                                          and a few maize fields and perhaps a patch of bananas. We do not have labour lines on
                                          the farm because our men all live within easy walking distance. Each worker has a labour
                                          card with thirty little squares on it. One of these squares is crossed off for each days work
                                          and when all thirty are marked in this way the labourer draws his pay and hies himself off
                                          to the nearest small store and blows the lot. The card system is necessary because
                                          these Africans are by no means slaves to work. They work only when they feel like it or
                                          when someone in the family requires a new garment, or when they need a few shillings
                                          to pay their annual tax. Their fields, chickens and goats provide them with the food they
                                          need but they draw rations of maize meal beans and salt. Only our headman is on a
                                          salary. His name is Thomas and he looks exactly like the statues of Julius Caesar, the
                                          same bald head and muscular neck and sardonic expression. He comes from Northern
                                          Rhodesia and is more intelligent than the locals.

                                          We still live mainly on chickens. We have a boy whose job it is to scour the
                                          countryside for reasonable fat ones. His name is Lucas and he is quite a character. He
                                          has such long horse teeth that he does not seem able to close his mouth and wears a
                                          perpetual amiable smile. He brings his chickens in beehive shaped wicker baskets
                                          which are suspended on a pole which Lucas carries on his shoulder.

                                          We buy our groceries in bulk from Mbeya, our vegetables come from our
                                          garden by the river and our butter from Kath Wood. Our fresh milk we buy from the
                                          natives. It is brought each morning by three little totos each carrying one bottle on his
                                          shaven head. Did I tell you that the local Wasafwa file their teeth to points. These kids
                                          grin at one with their little sharks teeth – quite an “all-ready-to-eat-you-with-my-dear” look.
                                          A few nights ago a message arrived from Kath Wood to say that Queenie
                                          Stewart was very ill and would George drive her across to the Doctor at Tukuyu. I
                                          wanted George to wait until morning because it was pouring with rain, and the mountain
                                          road to Tukuyu is tricky even in dry weather, but he said it is dangerous to delay with any
                                          kind of fever in Africa and he would have to start at once. So off he drove in the rain and I
                                          did not see him again until the following night.

                                          George said that it had been a nightmare trip. Queenie had a high temperature
                                          and it was lucky that Kath was able to go to attend to her. George needed all his
                                          attention on the road which was officially closed to traffic, and very slippery, and in some
                                          places badly eroded. In some places the decking of bridges had been removed and
                                          George had to get out in the rain and replace it. As he had nothing with which to fasten
                                          the decking to the runners it was a dangerous undertaking to cross the bridges especially
                                          as the rivers are now in flood and flowing strongly. However they reached Tukuyu safely
                                          and it was just as well they went because the Doctor diagnosed Queenies illness as
                                          Spirillium Tick Fever which is a very nasty illness indeed.

                                          Eleanor.

                                          Mchewe Estate. 20th May 1931

                                          Dear Family,

                                          I’m feeling fit and very happy though a bit lonely sometimes because George
                                          spends much of his time away in the hills cutting a furrow miles long to bring water to the
                                          house and to the upper part of the shamba so that he will be able to irrigate the coffee
                                          during the dry season.

                                          It will be quite an engineering feat when it is done as George only has makeshift
                                          surveying instruments. He has mounted an ordinary cheap spirit level on an old camera
                                          tripod and has tacked two gramophone needles into the spirit level to give him a line.
                                          The other day part of a bank gave way and practically buried two of George’s labourers
                                          but they were quickly rescued and no harm was done. However he will not let them
                                          work unless he is there to supervise.

                                          I keep busy so that the days pass quickly enough. I am delighted with the
                                          material you sent me for curtains and loose covers and have hired a hand sewing
                                          machine from Pedro-of-the-overcoat and am rattling away all day. The machine is an
                                          ancient German one and when I say rattle, I mean rattle. It is a most cumbersome, heavy
                                          affair of I should say, the same vintage as George Stevenson’s Rocket locomotive.
                                          Anyway it sews and I am pleased with my efforts. We made a couch ourselves out of a
                                          native bed, a mattress and some planks but all this is hidden under the chintz cover and
                                          it looks quite the genuine bought article. I have some diversions too. Small black faced
                                          monkeys sit in the trees outside our bedroom window and they are most entertaining to
                                          watch. They are very mischievous though. When I went out into the garden this morning
                                          before breakfast I found that the monkeys had pulled up all my carnations. There they
                                          lay, roots in the air and whether they will take again I don’t know.

                                          I like the monkeys but hate the big mountain baboons that come and hang
                                          around our chicken house. I am terrified that they will tear our pup into bits because he is
                                          a plucky young thing and will rush out to bark at the baboons.

                                          George usually returns for the weekends but last time he did not because he had
                                          a touch of malaria. He sent a boy down for the mail and some fresh bread. Old Lucas
                                          arrived with chickens just as the messenger was setting off with mail and bread in a
                                          haversack on his back. I thought it might be a good idea to send a chicken to George so
                                          I selected a spry young rooster which I handed to the messenger. He, however,
                                          complained that he needed both hands for climbing. I then had one of my bright ideas
                                          and, putting a layer of newspaper over the bread, I tucked the rooster into the haversack
                                          and buckled down the flap so only his head protruded.

                                          I thought no more about it until two days later when the messenger again
                                          appeared for fresh bread. He brought a rather terse note from George saying that the
                                          previous bread was uneatable as the rooster had eaten some of it and messed on the
                                          rest. Ah me!

                                          The previous weekend the Hickson-Woods, Stewarts and ourselves, went
                                          across to Tukuyu to attend a dance at the club there. the dance was very pleasant. All
                                          the men wore dinner jackets and the ladies wore long frocks. As there were about
                                          twenty men and only seven ladies we women danced every dance whilst the surplus
                                          men got into a huddle around the bar. George and I spent the night with the Agricultural
                                          Officer, Mr Eustace, and I met his fiancee, Lillian Austin from South Africa, to whom I took
                                          a great liking. She is Governess to the children of Major Masters who has a farm in the
                                          Tukuyu district.

                                          On the Sunday morning we had a look at the township. The Boma was an old German one and was once fortified as the Africans in this district are a very warlike tribe.
                                          They are fine looking people. The men wear sort of togas and bands of cloth around
                                          their heads and look like Roman Senators, but the women go naked except for a belt
                                          from which two broad straps hang down, one in front and another behind. Not a graceful
                                          garb I assure you.

                                          We also spent a pleasant hour in the Botanical Gardens, laid out during the last
                                          war by the District Commissioner, Major Wells, with German prisoner of war labour.
                                          There are beautiful lawns and beds of roses and other flowers and shady palm lined
                                          walks and banana groves. The gardens are terraced with flights of brick steps connecting
                                          the different levels and there is a large artificial pond with little islands in it. I believe Major
                                          Wells designed the lake to resemble in miniature, the Lakes of Killarney.
                                          I enjoyed the trip very much. We got home at 8 pm to find the front door locked
                                          and the kitchen boy fast asleep on my newly covered couch! I hastily retreated to the
                                          bedroom whilst George handled the situation.

                                          Eleanor.

                                        Viewing 20 results - 21 through 40 (of 112 total)